Title: The Conquest of Canaan
Subject:
Author: Booth Tarkington
Keywords:
Creator:
PDF Version: 1.2
Page No 1
The Conquest of Canaan
Booth Tarkington
Page No 2
Table of Contents
The Conquest of Canaan....................................................................................................................................1
Booth Tarkington .....................................................................................................................................1
The Conquest of Canaan
i
Page No 3
The Conquest of Canaan
Booth Tarkington
I. ENTER CHORUS
II. A RESCUE
III. OLD HOPES
IV. THE DISASTER
V. BEAVER BEACH
VI. "YE'LL TAK' THE HIGH ROAD AND I'LL TAK' THE LOW ROAD"
VII. GIVE A DOG A BAD NAME
VIII. A BAD PENNY TURNS UP
IX. OUTER DARKNESS
X. THE TRYST
XI. WHEN HALFGODS GO
XII. TO REMAIN ON THE FIELD OF BATTLE IS NOT ALWAYS A VICTORY
XIII. THE WATCHER AND THE WARDEN
XIV. WHITE ROSES IN A LAWOFFICE
XV. HAPPY FEAR GIVES HIMSELF UP
XVI. THE TWO CANAANS
XVII. MR. SHEEHAN'S HINTS
XVIII. IN THE HEAT OF THE DAY
XIX. ESKEW ARP
XX. THREE ARE ENLISTED
XXI. NORBERT WAITS FOR JOE
XXII. MR. SHEEHAN SPEAKS
XXIII. JOE WALKS ACROSS THE COURTHOUSE YARD
XXIV. MARTIN PIKE KEEPS AN ENGAGEMENT
XXV. THE JURY COMES IN
XXVI. "ANCIENT OF DAYS"
To L.F.T.
I. ENTER CHORUS
A dry snow had fallen steadily throughout the still night, so that when a cold, upper wind cleared the sky
gloriously in the morning the incongruous Indiana town shone in a white harmonyroof, ledge, and earth as
evenly covered as by moonlight. There was no thaw; only where the line of factories followed the big bend of
the frozen river, their distant chimneys like exclamation points on a blank page, was there a first threat
against the supreme whiteness. The wind passed quickly and on high; the shouting of the schoolchildren had
ceased at nine o'clock with pitiful suddenness; no sleighbells laughed out on the air; and the muffling of the
thoroughfares wrought an unaccustomed peace like that of Sunday. This was the phenomenon which afforded
the opening of the morning debate of the sages in the wide windows of the "National House."
Only such unfortunates as have so far failed to visit Canaan do not know that the "National House" is on the
Main Street side of the Courthouse Square, and has the advantage of being within two minutes' walk of the
railroad station, which is in plain sight of the windowsan inestimable benefit to the conversation of the
aged men who occupied these windows on this white morning, even as they were wont in summer to hold
The Conquest of Canaan 1
Page No 4
against all comers the caneseated chairs on the pavement outside. Thence, as trains came and went, they
commanded the city gates, and, seeking motives and adding to the stock of history, narrowly observed and
examined into all who entered or departed. Their habit was not singular. He who would foolishly tax the
sages of Canaan with a bucolic lightmindedness must first walk in Piccadilly in early June, stroll down the
Corso in Rome before Ash Wednesday, or regard those windows of Fifth Avenue whose curtains are
withdrawn of a winter Sunday; for in each of these great streets, wherever the windows, not of trade, are
widest, his eyes must behold wise men, like to those of Canaan, executing always their same purpose.
The difference is in favor of Canaan; the "National House" was the club, but the perusal of traveller or passer
by was here only the spume blown before a stately ship of thought; and you might hear the sages comparing
the Koran with the speeches of Robert J. Ingersoll.
In the days of board sidewalks, "mailtime" had meant a precise moment for Canaan, and even now, many
years after the first postman, it remained somewhat definite to the aged men; for, out of deference to a
pleasant, olden custom, and perhaps partly for an excuse to "get down to the hotel" (which was not altogether
in favor with the elderly ladies), most of them retained their antique boxes in the postoffice, happily in the
next building.
In this connection it may be written that a subscription clerk in the office of the Chicago Daily Standard,
having noted a single subscriber from Canaan, was, a fortnight later, pleased to receive, by one mail, nine
subscriptions from that promising town. If one brought nine others in a fortnight, thought he, what would
nine bring in a month? Amazingly, they brought nothing, and the rest was silence. Here was a matter of
intricate diplomacy never to come within that youth his ken. The morning voyage to the postoffice, long
mocked as a fable and screen by the families of the sages, had grown so difficult to accomplish for one of
them, Colonel Flitcroft (Colonel in the war with Mexico), that he had been put to it, indeed, to foot the
firingline against his wife (a lady of celebrated determination and halevoiced at seventy), and to defend the
rental of a box which had sheltered but three missives in four years. Desperation is often inspiration; the
Colonel brilliantly subscribed for the Standard, forgetting to give his house address, and it took the others just
thirteen days to wring his secret from him. Then the Standard served for all.
Mailtime had come to mean that bright hour when they all got their feet on the brass rod which protected the
sills of the two big windows, with the steamradiators sizzling like kettles against the side wall. Mr. Jonas
Tabor, who had sold his hardware business magnificently (not magnificently for his nephew, the purchaser)
some ten years before, was usually, in spite of the fact that he remained a bachelor at seventynine, the last to
settle down with the others, though often the first to reach the hotel, which he always entered by a side door,
because he did not believe in the treating system. And it was Mr. Eskew Arp, only seventyfive, but already
a thoroughly capable cynic, who, almost invariably "opened the argument," and it was he who discovered the
sinister intention behind the weather of this particular morning. Mr. Arp had not begun life so sourly: as a
youth he had been proud of his given name, which had come to him through his mother's family, who had
made it honorable, but many years of explanations that Eskew did not indicate his initials had lowered his
opinion of the intelligence and morality of the race.
The malevolence of his voice and manner this morning, therefore, when he shook his finger at the town
beyond the windows, and exclaimed, with a bitter laugh, "Look at it!" was no surprise to his companions.
"Jest look at it! I tell you the devil is mighty smart. Ha, ha! Mighty smart!"
Through custom it was the duty of Squire Buckalew (Justice of the Peace in '59) to be the first to take up Mr.
Arp. The others looked to him for it. Therefore, he asked, sharply:
"What's the devil got to do with snow?"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 2
Page No 5
"Everything to do with it, sir," Mr. Arp retorted. "It's plain as day to anybody with eyes and sense."
"Then I wish you'd p'int it out," said Buckalew, "if you've got either."
"By the Almighty, Squire"Mr. Arp turned in his chair with sudden heat"if I'd lived as long as you"
"You have," interrupted the other, stung. "Twelve years ago!"
"If I'd lived as long as you," Mr. Arp repeated, unwincingly, in a louder voice, "and had follered Satan's trail
as long as you have, and yet couldn't recognize it when I see it, I'd git converted and vote Prohibitionist."
"_I_ don't see it," interjected Uncle Joe Davey, in his querulous voice. (He was the patriarch of them all.)
"_I_ can't find no clovenhoofprints in the snow."
"All over it, sir!" cried the cynic. "All over it! Old Satan loves tricks like this. Here's a town that's jest one
squirmin' mass of lies and envy and vice and wickedness and corruption"
"Hold on!" exclaimed Colonel Flitcroft. "That's a slander upon our hearths and our government. Why, when I
was in the Council"
"It wasn't a bit worse then," Mr. Arp returned, unreasonably. "Jest you look how the devil fools us. He drops
down this here virgin mantle on Canaan and makes it look as good as you pretend you think it is: as good as
the Sundayschool room of a country churchthough THAT"he went off on a tangent, venomously"is
generally only another whited sepulchre, and the superintendent's mighty apt to have a bottle of whiskey hid
behind the organ, and"
"Look here, Eskew," said Jonas Tabor, "that's got nothin' to do with"
"Why ain't it? Answer me!" cried Mr. Arp, continuing, without pause: "Why ain't it? Can't you wait till I git
through? You listen to me, and when I'm ready I'll listen to"
"See here," began the Colonel, making himself heard over three others, "I want to ask you"
"No, sir!" Mr. Arp pounded the floor irascibly with his hickory stick. "Don't you ask me anything! How can
you tell that I'm not going to answer your question without your asking it, till I've got through? You listen
first. I say, here's a town of nearly thirty thousand inhabitants, every last one of 'emmen, women, and
children selfish and cowardly and sinful, if you could see their innermost natures; a town of the ugliest and
worst built houses in the world, and governed by a lot of saloonkeepersthough I hope it 'll never git down
to where the ministers can run it. And the devil comes along, and in one nightwhy, all you got to do is
LOOK at it! You'd think we needn't ever trouble to make it better. That's what the devil wants us to
dowants us to rest easy about it, and paints it up to look like a heaven of peace and purity and sanctified
spirits. Snowfall like this would of made Lot turn the angel outofdoors and say that the old home was good
enough for him. Gomorrah would of looked like a Puritan villagethough I'll bet my last dollar that there
was a lot, and a WHOLE lot, that's never been told about Puritan villages. A lot that"
"WHAT never was?" interrupted Mr. Peter Bradbury, whose granddaughter had lately announced her
discovery that the Bradburys were descended from Miles Standish. "What wasn't told about Puritan villages?"
"Can't you wait?" Mr. Arp's accents were those of pain. "Haven't I got ANY right to present my side of the
case? Ain't we restrained enough to allow of free speech here? How can we ever git anywhere in an argument
like this, unless we let one man talk at a time? How"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 3
Page No 6
"Go on with your statement," said Uncle Joe Davey, impatiently.
Mr. Arp's grievance was increased. "Now listen to YOU! How many more interruptions are comin'? I'll listen
to the other side, but I've got to state mine first, haven't I? If I don't make my point clear, what's the use of the
argument? Argumentation is only the comparison of two sides of a question, and you have to see what the
first side IS before you can compare it with the other one, don't you? Are you all agreed to that?"
"Yes, yes," said the Colonel. "Go ahead. We won't interrupt until you're through."
"Very well," resumed Mr. Arp, with a fleeting expression of satisfaction, "as I said before, I wish toas I
said" He paused, in some confusion. "As I said, argumentation isthat is, I say" He stopped again,
utterly at sea, having talked himself so far out of his course that he was unable to recall either his sailing port
or his destination. Finally he said, feebly, to save the confession, "Well, go on with your side of it."
This generosity was for a moment disconcerting; however, the quietest of the party took up the
oppositionRoger Tabor, a very thin, old man with a cleanshaven face, almost as white as his hair, and
melancholy, gentle, gray eyes, very unlike those of his brother Jonas, which were dark and sharp and
buttonbright. (It was to Roger's son that Jonas had so magnificently sold the hardware business.) Roger was
known in Canaan as "the artist"; there had never been another of his profession in the place, and the town
knew not the word "painter," except in application to the useful artisan who is subject to leadpoisoning.
There was no indication of his profession in the attire of Mr. Tabor, unless the too apparent age of his black
felt hat and a neat patch at the elbow of his shiny, old brown overcoat might have been taken as symbols of
the sacrifice to his muse which his life had been. He was not a constant attendant of the conclave, and when
he came it was usually to listen; indeed, he spoke so seldom that at the sound of his voice they all turned to
him with some surprise.
"I suppose," he began, "that Eskew means the devil is behind all beautiful things."
"Ugly ones, too," said Mr. Arp, with a start of recollection. "And I wish to state"
"Not now!" Colonel Flitcroft turned upon him violently. "You've already stated it."
"Then, if he is behind the ugly things, too," said Roger, "we must take him either way, so let us be glad of the
beauty for its own sake. Eskew says this is a wicked town. It may beI don't know. He says it's badly built;
perhaps it is; but it doesn't seem to me that it's ugly in itself. I don't know what its real self is, because it
wears so many aspects. God keeps painting it all the time, and never shows me twice the same picture; not
even two snowfalls are just alike, nor the days that follow them; no more than two misty sunsets are
alikefor the color and even the form of the town you call ugly are a matter of the season of the year and of
the time of day and of the light and air. The ugly town is like an endless gallery which you can walk through,
from yearend to yearend, never seeing the same canvas twice, no matter how much you may want toand
there's the pathos of it. Isn't it the same with people with the characters of all of us, just as it is with our faces?
No face remains the same for two successive days"
"It don't?" Colonel Flitcroft interrupted, with an explosive and rueful incredulity. "Well, I'd like to" Second
thoughts came to him almost immediately, and, as much out of gallantry as through discretion, fearing that he
might be taken as thinking of one at home, he relapsed into silence.
Not so with the others. It was as if a firecracker had been dropped into a sleeping poultry yard. Least of all
could Mr. Arp contain himself. At the top of his voice, necessarily, he agreed with Roger that faces changed,
not only from day to day, and not only because of light and air and such things, but from hour to hour, and
from minute to minute, through the hideous stimulus of hypocrisy.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 4
Page No 7
The "argument" grew heated; half a dozen tidy quarrels arose; all the sages went at it fiercely, except Roger
Tabor, who stole quietly away. The aged men were enjoying themselves thoroughly, especially those who
quarrelled. Naturally, the frail bark of the topic which had been launched was whirled about by too many
sidecurrents to remain long in sight, and soon became derelict, while the intellectual dolphins dove and
tumbled in the depths. At the end of twenty minutes Mr. Arp emerged upon the surface, and in his mouth was
this:
"Tell me, why ain't the Churchwhy ain't the Church and the rest of the believers in a future life lookin' for
immortality at the other end of life, too? If we're immortal, we always have been; then why don't they ever
speculate on what we were before we were born? It's because they're too blame selfishdon't care a
flapdoodle about what WAS, all they want is to go on livin' forever."
Mr. Arp's voice had risen to an acrid triumphancy, when it suddenly faltered, relapsed to a murmur, and then
to a stricken silence, as a tall, fat man of overpowering aspect threw open the outer door near by and crossed
the lobby to the clerk's desk. An awe fell upon the sages with this advent. They were hushed, and after a
movement in their chairs, with a strange effect of huddling, sat disconcerted and attentive, like schoolboys
at the entrance of the master.
The personage had a big, fat, pink face and a heavily undershot jaw, what whitish beard he wore following
his double chin somewhat after the manner displayed in the portraits of Henry the Eighth. His eyes, very
bright under puffed upper lids, were intolerant and insultingly penetrating despite their small size. Their
irritability held a kind of hotness, and yet the personage exuded frost, not of the weather, all about him. You
could not imagine man or angel daring to greet this being geniallysooner throw a kiss to Mount Pilatus!
"Mr. Brown," he said, with ponderous hostility, in a bull bass, to the clerkthe kind of voice which would
have made an express train leave the track and go round the other way"do you hear me?"
"Oh yes, Judge," the clerk replied, swiftly, in tones as unlike those which he used for strange transients as a
collector's voice in his ladylove's ear is unlike that which he propels at delinquents.
"Do you see that snow?" asked the personage, threateningly.
"Yes, Judge." Mr. Brown essayed a placating smile. "Yes, indeed, Judge Pike."
"Has your employer, the manager of this hotel, seen that snow?" pursued the personage, with a gesture of
unspeakable solemn menace.
"Yes, sir. I think so. Yes, sir."
"Do you think he fully understands that I am the proprietor of this building?"
"Certainly, Judge, cer"
"You will inform him that I do not intend to be discommoded by his negligence as I pass to my offices. Tell
him from me that unless he keeps the sidewalks in front of this hotel clear of snow I will cancel his lease.
Their present condition is outrageous. Do you understand me? Outrageous! Do you hear?"
"Yes, Judge, I do so," answered the clerk, hoarse with respect. "I'll see to it this minute, Judge Pike."
"You had better." The personage turned himself about and began a grim progress towards the door by which
he had entered, his eyes fixing themselves angrily upon the conclave at the windows.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 5
Page No 8
Colonel Flitcroft essayed a smile, a faltering one.
"Fine weather, Judge Pike," he said, hopefully.
There was no response of any kind; the undershot jaw became more intolerant. The personage made his
opinion of the group disconcertingly plain, and the old boys understood that he knew them for a worthless lot
of senile loafers, as great a nuisance in his building as was the snow without; and much too evident was his
unspoken threat to see that the manager cleared them out of there before long.
He nodded curtly to the only man of substance among them, Jonas Tabor, and shut the door behind him with
majestic insult. He was Canaan's millionaire.
He was one of those dynamic creatures who leave the haunting impression of their wills behind them, like the
tails of BoPeep's sheep, like the evil dead men have done; he left his intolerant image in the ether for a long
time after he had gone, to confront and confound the aged men and hold them in deferential and humiliated
silence. Each of them was mysteriously lowered in his own estimation, and knew that he had been made to
seem futile and foolish in the eyes of his fellows. They were all conscious, too, that the clerk had been acutely
receptive of Judge Pike's reading of them; that he was reviving from his own squelchedness through the later
snubbing of the colonel; also that he might further seek to recover his poise by an attack on them for
cluttering up the office.
Naturally, Jonas Tabor was the first to speak. "Judge Pike's lookin' mighty well," he said, admiringly.
"Yes, he is," ventured Squire Buckalew, with deference; "mighty well."
"Yes, sir," echoed Peter Bradbury; "mighty well."
"He's a great man," wheezed Uncle Joe Davey; "a great man, Judge Martin Pike; a great man!"
"I expect he has considerable on his mind," said the Colonel, who had grown very red. "I noticed that he
hardly seemed to see us."
"Yes, sir," Mr. Bradbury corroborated, with an attempt at an amused laugh. "I noticed it, too. Of course a man
with all his cares and interests must git absentminded now and then."
"Of course he does," said the colonel. "A man with all his responsibilities "
"Yes, that's so," came a chorus of the brethren, finding comfort and reassurance as their voices and spirits
began to recover from the blight.
"There's a party at the Judge's tonight," said Mr. Bradbury" kind of a ball Mamie Pike's givin' for the
young folks. Quite a doin's, I hear."
"That's another thing that's ruining Canaan," Mr. Arp declared, morosely. "These entertainments they have
nowadays. Spend all the money out of townband from Indianapolis, chicken salad and darkey waiters from
Chicago! And what I want to know is, What's this town goin' to do about the nigger question?"
"What about it?" asked Mr. Davey, belligerently.
"What about it?" Mr. Arp mocked, fiercely. "You better say, `What about it?' "
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 6
Page No 9
"Well, what?" maintained Mr. Davey, steadfastly.
"I'll bet there ain't any less than four thousand niggers in Canaan today!" Mr. Arp hammered the floor with
his stick. "Every last one of 'em criminals, and more comin' on every train."
"No such a thing," said Squire Buckalew, living up to his bounden duty. "You look down the street. There's
the tenfortyfive comin' in now. I'll bet you a straight fivecent PeekaBoo cigar there ain't ary nigger on
the whole train, except the sleepin'car porters."
"What kind of a way to argue is that?" demanded Mr. Arp, hotly. "Bettin' ain't proof, is it? Besides, that's the
through express from the East. I meant trains from the South."
"You didn't say so," retorted Buckalew, triumphantly. "Stick to your bet, Eskew, stick to your bet."
"My bet!" cried the outraged Eskew. "Who offered to bet?"
"You did," replied the Squire, with perfect assurance and sincerity. The others supported him in the heartiest
spirit of onwiththedance, and war and joy were unconfined.
A decrepit hack or two, a couple of oldfashioned surreys, and a few "cutunders" drove by, bearing the
newly arrived and their valises, the hotel omnibus depositing several commercial travellers at the door. A
solitary figure came from the station on foot, and when it appeared within fair range of the window, Uncle
Joe Davey, who had but hovered on the flanks of the combat, first removed his spectacles and wiped them, as
though distrusting the vision they offered him, then, replacing them, scanned anew the approaching figure
and uttered a smothered cry.
"My Lord A'mighty!" he gasped. "What's this? Look there!"
They looked. A truce came involuntarily, and they sat in paralytic silence as the figure made its stately and
sensational progress along Main Street.
Not only the aged men were smitten. Men shovelling snow from the pavements stopped suddenly in their
labors; two women, talking busily on a doorstep, were stilled and remained in frozen attitudes as it passed; a
grocer's clerk, crossing the pavement, carrying a heavily laden basket to his delivery wagon, halted halfway
as the figure came near, and then, making a pivot of his heels as it went by, behaved towards it as does the
magnetic needle to the pole.
It was that of a tall gentleman, cheerfully, though somewhat with ennui, enduring his nineteenth winter. His
long and slender face he wore smiling, beneath an accurately cut plaster of dark hair cornicing his forehead, a
fashion followed by many youths of that year. This perfect bang was shown under a round black hat whose
rim was so small as almost not to be there at all; and the head was supported by a waxywhite seawall of
collar, rising three inches above the blue billows of a puffed cravat, upon which floated a large, hollow pearl.
His ulster, sporting a big cape at the shoulders, and a tasselled hood over the cape, was of a rough Scotch
cloth, patterned in faint, grayandwhite squares the size of baggagechecks, and it was so long that the
skirts trailed in the snow. His legs were lost in the accurately creased, voluminous garments that were the
tailors' canny reaction from the tight trousers with which the 'Eighties had begun: they were, in color, a palish
russet, broadly striped with gray, and, in size, surpassed the milder spirit of fashion so far as they permitted a
liberal knee action to take place almost without superficial effect. Upon his feet glistened long shoes, shaped,
save for the heels, like sharp racingshells; these were partially protected by tancolored low gaiters with
flat, shiny, brown buttons. In one hand the youth swung a bonehandled walking stick, perhaps an inch and
a half in diameter, the other carried a yellow leather banjocase, upon the outer side of which glittered the
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 7
Page No 10
embossedsilver initials, "E. B." He was smoking, but walked with his head up, making use, however, of a
gait at that time new to Canaan, a seeming superbly irresponsible lounge, engendering much motion of the
shoulders, producing an effect of carelessness combined with independencean effect which the innocent
have been known to hail as an unconscious one.
He looked about him as he came, smilingly, with an expression of princely amusementas an elderly
cabinet minister, say, strolling about a village where he had spent some months in his youth, a hamlet which
he had then thought large and imposing, but which, being revisited after years of cosmopolitan glory, appeals
to his whimsy and his pity. The youth's glance at the courthouse unmistakably said: "Ah, I recall that odd
little box. I thought it quite large in the days before I became what I am now, and I dare say the good
townsfolk still think it an imposing structure!" With everything in sight he deigned to be amused, especially
with the old faces in the "National House" windows. To these he waved his stick with airy graciousness.
"My soul!" said Mr. Davey. "It seems to know some of us!"
"Yes," agreed Mr. Arp, his voice recovered, "and _I_ know IT."
"You do?" exclaimed the Colonel.
"I do, and so do you. It's Fanny Louden's boy, 'Gene, come home for his Christmas holidays."
"By George! you're right," cried Flitcroft; "I recognize him now."
"But what's the matter with him?" asked Mr. Bradbury, eagerly. "Has he joined some patent medicine
troupe?"
"Not a bit," replied Eskew. "He went East to college last fall."
"Do they MAKE the boys wear them clothes?" persisted Bradbury. "Is it some kind of uniform?"
"I don't care what it is," said Jonas Tabor. "If I was Henry Louden I wouldn't let him wear 'em around here."
"Oh, you wouldn't, wouldn't you, Jonas?" Mr. Arp employed the accents of sarcasm. "I'd like to see Henry
Louden try to interfere with 'Gene Bantry. Fanny'd lock the old fool up in the cellar."
The lofty vision lurched out of view.
"I reckon," said the Colonel, leaning forward to see the last of it" I reckon Henry Louden's about the
saddest case of abused stepfather I ever saw."
"It's his own fault," said Mr. Arp"twice not havin' sense enough not to marry. Him with a son of his own,
too!"
"Yes," assented the Colonel, "marryin' a widow with a son of her own, and that widow Fanny!"
"Wasn't it just the same with her first husband Bantry?" Mr. Davey asked, not for information, as he
immediately answered himself. "You bet it was! Didn't she always rule the roost? Yes, she did. She made a
god of 'Gene from the day he was born. Bantry's house was run for him, like Louden's is now."
"And look," exclaimed Mr. Arp, with satisfaction, "at the way he's turned out!"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 8
Page No 11
"He ain't turned out at all yet; he's too young," said Buckalew. "Besides, clothes don't make the man."
"Wasn't he smokin' a cigareet!" cried Eskew, triumphantly. This was final.
"It's a pity Henry Louden can't do something for his own son," said Mr. Bradbury. "Why don't he send him
away to college?"
"Fanny won't let him," chuckled Mr. Arp, malevolently. "Takes all their spare change to keep 'Gene there in
style. I don't blame her. 'Gene certainly acts the fool, but that Joe Louden is the orneriest boy I ever saw in an
ornery world full."
"He always was kind of misCHEEvous," admitted Buckalew. "I don't think he's mean, though, and it does
seem kind of not just right that Joe's father's moneyBantry didn't leave anything to speak ofhas to go to
keepin' 'Gene on the fat of the land, with Joe gittin' up at halfpast four to carry papers, and him goin' on
nineteen years old."
"It's all he's fit for!" exclaimed Eskew. "He's low down, I tell ye. Ain't it only last week Judge Pike caught
him shootin' craps with Pike's nigger driver and some other nigger hiredmen in the alley back of Pike's
barn."
Mr. Schindlinger, the retired grocer, one of the silent members, corroborated Eskew's information. "I heert
dot, too," he gave forth, in his fat voice. "He blays dominoes pooty often in der room back off Louie
Farbach's tsaloon. I see him myself. Pooty often. Blayin' fer a leedle moneymit loafers! Loafers!"
"Pretty outlook for the Loudens!" said Eskew Arp, much pleased. "One boy a plum fool and dressed like it,
the other gone to the dogs already!"
"What could you expect Joe to be?" retorted Squire Buckalew. "What chance has he ever had? Long as I can
remember Fanny's made him fetch and carry for 'Gene. 'Gene's had everything all the fancy clothes, all the
pocketmoney, and now college!"
"You ever hear that boy Joe talk politics?" asked Uncle Joe Davey, crossing a cough with a chuckle. "His
head's so full of schemes fer running this town, and state, too, it's a wonder it don't bust. Henry Louden told
me he's see Joe set around and study by the hour how to save three million dollars for the state in two years."
"And the best he can do for himself," added Eskew, "is deliverin' the Daily Tocsin on a second hand Star
bicycle and gamblin' with niggers and riffraff! None of the nice young folks invite him to their doin's any
more."
"That's because he's got so shabby he's quit goin' with em," said Buckalew.
"No, it ain't," snapped Mr. Arp. "It's because he's so low down. He's no more 'n a town outcast. There ain't ary
one of the girls 'll have a thing to do with him, except that riprarin' tom boy next door to Louden's; and the
others don't have much to do with HER, neither, I can tell ye. That Arie Tabor"
Colonel Flitcroft caught him surreptitiously by the arm. "SH, Eskew!" he whispered. "Look out what you're
sayin'!"
"You needn't mind me," Jonas Tabor spoke up, crisply. "I washed my hands of all responsibility for Roger's
branch of the family long ago. Never was one of 'em had the energy or brains to make a decent livin',
beginning with Roger; not one worth his salt! I set Roger's son up in business, and all the return he ever made
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 9
Page No 12
me was to go into bankruptcy and take to drink, till he died a sot, like his wife did of shame. I done all I could
when I handed him over my store, and I never expect to lift a finger for 'em again. Ariel Tabor's my
grandniece, but she didn't act like it, and you can say anything you like about her, for what I care. The last
time I spoke to her was a year and a half ago, and I don't reckon I'll ever trouble to again."
"How was that, Jonas?" quickly inquired Mr. Davey, who, being the eldest of the party, was the most curious.
"What happened?"
"She was out in the street, up on that high bicycle of Joe Louden's. He was teachin' her to ride, and she was
sittin' on it like a man does. I stopped and told her she wasn't respectable. Sixteen years old, goin' on
seventeen!"
"What did she say?"
"Laughed," said Jonas, his voice becoming louder as the recital of his wrongs renewed their sting in his soul.
"Laughed!"
"What did you do?"
"I went up to her and told her she wasn't a decent girl, and shook the wheel." Mr. Tabor illustrated by seizing
the lapels of Joe Davey and shaking him. "I told her if her grandfather had any spunk she'd git an
oldfashioned hidin' for behavin' that way. And I shook the wheel again." Here Mr. Tabor, forgetting in the
wrath incited by the recollection that he had not to do with an inanimate object, swung the gasping and
helpless Mr. Davey rapidly back and forth in his chair. "I shook it good and hard!"
"What did she do then?" asked Peter Bradbury.
"Fell off on me," replied Jonas, violently. "On purpose!"
"I wisht she'd killed ye," said Mr. Davey, in a choking voice, as, released, he sank back in his chair.
"On purpose!" repeated Jonas. "And smashed a straw hat I hadn't had three months! All to pieces! So it
couldn't be fixed!"
"And what then?" pursued Bradbury.
"SHE ran, "replied Jonas, bitterly" ran! And Joe LoudenJoe Louden" He paused and gulped.
"What did he do?" Peter leaned forward in his chair eagerly.
The narrator of the outrage gulped again, and opened and shut his mouth before responding.
"He said if I didn't pay for a broken spoke on his wheel he'd have to sue me!"
No one inquired if Jonas had paid, and Jonas said no more. The recollection of his wrongs, together with the
illustrative violence offered to Mr. Davey, had been too much for him. He sank back, panting, in his chair, his
hands fluttering nervously over his heart, and closed his eyes.
"I wonder why," ruminated Mr. Bradbury"I wonder why 'Gene Bantry walked up from the deepo. Don't
seem much like his style. Should think he'd of rode up in a hack.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 10
Page No 13
"Sho!" said Uncle Joe Davey, his breath recovered. "He wanted to walk up past Judge Pike's, to see if there
wasn't a show of Mamie's bein' at the window, and give her a chance to look at that college uniform and
banjobox and new walk of his."
Mr. Arp began to show signs of uneasiness.
"I'd like mighty well to know," he said, shifting round in his chair, "if there's anybody here that's been able to
answer the question I PUT, yesterday, just before we went home. You all tried to, but I didn't hear anything I
could consider anyways near even a fair argument."
"Who tried to?" asked Buckalew, sharply, sitting up straight. "What question?"
"What proof can you bring me," began Mr. Arp, deliberately, "that we folks, modernly, ain't more degenerate
than the ancient Romans?"
II. A RESCUE
Main Street, already muffled by the snow, added to its quietude a frozen hush where the wonderbearing
youth pursued his course along its white, straight way. None was there in whom impertinence overmastered
astonishment, or who recovered from the sight in time to jeer with effect; no "Trab's boy" gathered courage to
enact in the thoroughfare a scene of mockery and of joy. Leaving business at a temporary standstill behind
him, Mr. Bantry swept his long coat steadily over the snow and soon emerged upon that part of the street
where the mart gave way to the home. The comfortable houses stood pleasantly back from the street, with
plenty of lawn and shrubbery about them; and often, along the picketfences, the laden branches of small
cedars, bending low with their burden, showered the young man's swinging shoulders glitteringly as he
brushed by.
And now that expression he worethe indulgent amusement of a man of the worldbegan to disintegrate
and show signs of change. It became finely grave, as of a high conventionality, lofty, assured, and mannered,
as he approached the Pike mansion. (The remotest stranger must at once perceive that the Canaan papers
could not have called it otherwise without pain.)
It was a big, smoothstonefaced house, product of the 'Seventies, frowning under an outrageously insistent
mansard, capped by a cupola, and staring out of long windows overtopped with "ornamental" slabs. Two
castiron deer, painted deathgray, twins of the same mould, stood on opposite sides of the front walk, their
backs towards it and each other, their bodies in profile to the street, their necks bent, however, so that they
gazed upon the passerbyyet gazed without emotion. Two large, calm dogs guarded the top of the steps
leading to the frontdoor; they also were twins and of the same interesting metal, though honored beyond the
deer by coats of black paint and shellac. It was to be remarked that these dogs were of no distinguishable
species or breed, yet they were unmistakably dogs; the dullest must have recognized them as such at a glance,
which was, perhaps, enough. It was a hideous house, importantlooking, cold, yet harshly aggressive, a house
whose exterior provoked a shuddering guess of the brass lambrequins and plush fringes within; a solid house,
obviously nay, blatantlythe residence of the principal citizen, whom it had grown to resemble, as is the
impish habit of houses; and it sat in the middle of its flat acre of snowy lawn like a rich, fat man enraged and
sitting straight up in bed to swear.
And yet there was one charming thing about this ugly house. Some workmen were enclosing a large side
porch with heavy canvas, evidently for festal purposes. Looking out from between two strips of the canvas
was the rosy and delicate face of a pretty girl, smiling upon Eugene Bantry as he passed. It was an obviously
pretty face, all the youth and prettiness there for your very first glance; elaborately pretty, like the splendid
profusion of hair about and above itambercolored hair, upon which so much time had been spent that a
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 11
Page No 14
circle of large, round curls rose above the mass of it like golden bubbles tipping a coronet.
The girl's fingers were pressed thoughtfully against her chin as Eugene strode into view; immediately her
eyes widened and brightened. He swung along the fence with the handsomest appearance of unconsciousness,
until he reached a point nearly opposite her. Then he turned his head, as if haphazardly, and met her eyes. At
once she threw out her hand towards him, waving him a greetinga gesture which, as her fingers had been
near her lips, was a little like throwing a kiss. He crooked an elbow and with a onetwothree military
movement removed his smallbrimmed hat, extended it to full arm'slength at the shoulderlevel, returned it
to his head with LifeGuard precision. This was also new to Canaan. He was letting Mamie Pike have it all at
once.
The impression was as large as he could have desired. She remained at the opening in the canvas and watched
him until he wagged his shoulders round the next corner and disappeared into a cross street. As for Eugene,
he was calm with a great calm, and very red.
He had not covered a great distance, however, before his gravity was replaced by his former smiling look of
the landed gentleman amused by the innocent pastimes of the peasants, though there was no one in sight
except a woman sweeping some snow from the front steps of a cottage, and she, not perceiving him, retired
indoors without knowing her loss. He had come to a thinly built part of the town, the perfect quiet of which
made the sound he heard as he opened the picket gate of his own home all the more startling. It was a
screamloud, frantic, and terrorstricken.
Eugene stopped, with the gate half open.
Out of the winter skeleton of a grapearbor at one side of the foursquare brick house a brown faced girl of
seventeen precipitated herself through the air in the midst of a shower of torn cardboard which she threw
before her as she leaped. She lit upon her toes and headed for the gate at top speed, pursued by a pale young
man whose thin arms strove spasmodically to reach her. Scattering snow behind them, hair flying, the pair
sped on like two tattered branches before a high wind; for, as they came nearer Eugene (of whom, in the
tensity of their flight, they took no note), it was to be seen that both were so shabbily dressed as to be almost
ragged. There was a brown patch upon the girl's faded skirt at the knee; the shortness of the garment
indicating its age to be something over three years, as well as permitting the knowledge to become more
general than befitting that her cotton stockings had been clumsily darned in several places. Her pursuer was
in as evil case; his trousers displayed a tendency to fringedness at pocket and heel; his coat, blowing open as
he ran, threw pennants of torn lining to the breeze, and made it too plain that there were but three buttons on
his waistcoat.
The girl ran beautifully, but a fleeter foot was behind her, and though she dodged and evaded like a creature
of the woods, the reaching hand fell upon the loose sleeve of her red blouse, nor fell lightly. She gave a
wrench of frenzy; the antique fabric refused the strain; parted at the shoulder seam so thoroughly that the
whole sleeve came awaybut not to its owner's release, for she had been brought round by the jerk, so that,
agile as she had shown herself, the pursuer threw an arm about her neck, before she could twist away, and
held her.
There was a sharp struggle, as short as it was fierce. Neither of these extraordinary wrestlers spoke. They
fought. Victory hung in the balance for perhaps four seconds; then the girl was thrown heavily upon her back,
in such a turmoil of snow that she seemed to be the mere nucleus of a white comet. She struggled to get up,
plying knee and elbow with a very anguish of determination; but her opponent held her, pinioned both her
wrists with one hand, and with the other rubbed great handfuls of snow into her face, sparing neither mouth
nor eyes.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 12
Page No 15
"You will!" he cried. "You will tear up my pictures! A dirty trick, and you get washed for it!"
Half suffocated, choking, gasping, she still fought on, squirming and kicking with such spirit that the pair of
them appeared to the beholder like figures of mist writhing in a fountain of snow.
More violence was to mar the peace of morning. Unexpectedly attacked from the rear, the conqueror was
seized by the nape of the neck and one wrist, and jerked to his feet, simultaneously receiving a succession of
kicks from his assailant. Prompted by an entirely natural curiosity, he essayed to turn his head to see who this
might be, but a twist of his forearm and the pressure of strong fingers under his ear constrained him to remain
as he was; therefore, abandoning resistance, and, oddly enough, accepting without comment the indication
that his captor desired to remain for the moment incognito, he resorted calmly to explanations.
"She tore up a picture of mine," he said, receiving the punishment without apparent emotion. "She seemed to
think because she'd drawn it herself she had a right to."
There was a slight whimsical droop at the corner of his mouth as he spoke, which might have been thought
characteristic of him. He was an odd looking boy, not illmade, though very thin and not tall. His pallor was
clear and even, as though constitutional; the features were delicate, almost childlike, but they were very
slightly distorted, through nervous habit, to an expression at once wistful and humorous; one eyebrow was a
shade higher than the other, one side of the mouth slightly drawn down; the eyelids twitched a little,
habitually; the fine, blue eyes themselves were almost comically reproachfulthe look of a puppy who
thinks you would not have beaten him if you had known what was in his heart. All of this was in the quality
of his voice, too, as he said to his invisible captor, with an air of detachment from any personal feeling:
"What peculiar shoes you wear! I don't think I ever felt any so pointed before."
The rescuing knight took no thought of offering to help the persecuted damsel to arise; instead, he tightened
his grip upon the prisoner's neck until, perforce, waternot tearsstarted from the latter's eyes.
"You miserable little muff," said the conqueror, "what the devil do you mean, making this scene on our front
lawn?"
"Why, it's Eugene!" exclaimed the helpless one. "They didn't expect you till tonight. When did you get in?"
"Just in time to give you a lesson, my buck," replied Bantry, grimly. "In GOOD time for that, my playful
stepbrother."
He began to twist the other's wrista treatment of bone and ligament in the application of which
schoolboys and even freshmen are often adept. Eugene made the torture acute, and was apparently enjoying
the work, when suddenlywithout any manner of warninghe received an astounding blow upon the left
ear, which half stunned him for the moment, and sent his hat flying and himself reeling, so great was the
surprise and shock of it. It was not a slap, not an openhanded push, nothing like it, but a fierce,
welldelivered blow from a clinched fist with the shoulder behind it, and it was the girl who had given it.
"Don't you dare to touch Joe!" she cried, passionately. "Don't you lay a finger on him."
Furious and red, he staggered round to look at her.
"You wretched little wildcat, what do you mean by that?" he broke out.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 13
Page No 16
"Don't you touch Joe!" she panted. "Don't you" Her breath caught and there was a break in her voice as she
faced him. She could not finish the repetition of that cry, "Don't you touch Joe!"
But there was no break in the spirit, that passion of protection which had dealt the blow. Both boys looked at
her, something aghast.
She stood before them, trembling with rage and shivering with cold in the sudden wind which had come up.
Her hair had fallen and blew across her streaming face in brown witchwisps; one of the illdarned stockings
had come down and hung about her shoe in folds full of snow; the arm which had lost its sleeve was bare and
wet; thin as the arm of a growing boy, it shook convulsively, and was red from shoulder to clinched fist. She
was covered with snow. Mists of white drift blew across her, mercifully half veiling her.
Eugene recovered himself. He swung round upon his heel, restored his hat to his head with precision, picked
up his stick and touched his banjocase with it.
"Carry that into the house," he said, indifferently, to his stepbrother.
"Don't you do it!" said the girl, hotly, between her chattering teeth.
Eugene turned towards her, wearing the sharp edge of a smile. Not removing his eyes from her face, he
produced with deliberation a flat silver box from a pocket, took therefrom a cigarette, replaced the box,
extracted a smaller silver box from another pocket, shook out of it a fusee, slowly lit the cigarettethis in a
splendid silence, which he finally broke to say, languidly, but with particular distinctness:
"Ariel Tabor, go home!"
The girl's teeth stopped chattering, her lips remaining parted; she shook the hair out of her eyes and stared at
him as if she did not understand, but Joe Louden, who had picked up the banjocase obediently, burst into
cheerful laughter.
"That's it, 'Gene," he cried, gayly. "That's the way to talk to her!"
"Stow it, you young cub," replied Eugene, not turning to him. "Do you think I'm trying to be amusing?"
"I don't know what you mean by `stow it,' " Joe began, "but if"
"I mean," interrupted the other, not relaxing his faintly smiling stare at the girl" I mean that Ariel Tabor is
to go home. Really, we can't have this kind of thing occurring upon our front lawn!"
The flush upon her wet cheeks deepened and became dark; even her arm grew redder as she gazed back at
him. In his eyes was patent his complete realization of the figure she cut, of this bare arm, of the strewn hair,
of the fallen stocking, of the ragged shoulder of her blouse, of her patched short skirt, of the whole
dishevelled little figure. He was the master of the house, and he was sending her home as illbehaved
children are sent home by neighbors.
The immobile, amused superiority of this proprietor of silver boxes, this wearer of strange and brilliant
garments, became slightly intensified as he pointed to the fallen sleeve, a rag of red and snow, lying near her
feet.
"You might take that with you?" he said, interrogatively.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 14
Page No 17
Her gaze had not wavered in meeting his, but at this her eyelashes began to wink uncontrollably, her chin to
tremble. She bent over the sleeve and picked it up, before Joe Louden, who had started towards her, could do
it for her. Then turning, her head still bent so that her face was hidden from both of them, she ran out of the
gate.
"DO go!" Joe called after her, vehemently. "Go! Just to show what a fool you are to think 'Gene's in earnest."
He would have followed, but his stepbrother caught him by the arm. "Don't stop her," said Eugene. "Can't
you tell when I AM in earnest, you bally muff!"
"I know you are," returned the other, in a low voice. "I didn't want her to think so for your sake."
"Thousands of thanks," said Eugene, airily. "You are a wise young judge. She couldn't stay in THAT state,
could she? I sent her for her own good."
"She could have gone in the house and your mother might have loaned her a jacket," returned Joe,
swallowing. "You had no business to make her go out in the street like that."
Eugene laughed. "There isn't a soul in sight and there, she's all right now. She's home."
Ariel had run along the fence until she came to the next gate, which opened upon a walk leading to a shabby,
meandering old house of one story, with a very long, low porch, once painted white, running the full length of
the front. Ariel sprang upon the porch and disappeared within the house.
Joe stood looking after her, his eyelashes winking as had hers. "You oughtn't to have treated her that way," he
said, huskily.
Eugene laughed again. "How were YOU treating her when I came up? You bully her all you want to yourself,
but nobody else must say even a fatherly word to her!"
"That wasn't bullying," explained Joe. "We fight all the time."
"Mais oui!" assented Eugene. "I fancy!"
"What?" said the other, blankly.
"Pick up that banjocase again and come on," commanded Mr. Bantry, tartly. "Where's the mater?"
Joe stared at him. "Where's what?"
"The mater!" was the frowning reply.
"Oh yes, I know!" said Joe, looking at his step brother curiously. "I've seen it in stories. She's upstairs.
You'll be a surprise. You're wearing lots of clothes, 'Gene."
"I suppose it will seem so to Canaan," returned the other, weariedly. "Governor feeling fit?"
"I never saw him," Joe replied; then caught himself. "Oh, I see what you mean! Yes, he's all right."
They had come into the hall, and Eugene was removing the long coat, while his stepbrother looked at him
thoughtfully.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 15
Page No 18
"'Gene," asked the latter, in a softened voice, "have you seen Mamie Pike yet?"
"You will find, my young friend," responded Mr. Bantry, "if you ever go about much outside of Canaan, that
ladies' names are not supposed to be mentioned indiscriminately."
"It's only," said Joe, "that I wanted to say that there's a dance at their house tonight. I suppose you'll be
going?"
"Certainly. Are you?"
Both knew that the question was needless; but Joe answered, gently:
"Oh no, of course not." He leaned over and fumbled with one foot as if to fasten a loose shoe string. "She
wouldn't be very likely to ask me."
"Well, what about it?"
"Only thatthat Arie Tabor's going."
"Indeed!" Eugene paused on the stairs, which he had begun to ascend. "Very interesting."
"I thought," continued Joe, hopefully, straightening up to look at him, "that maybe you'd dance with her. I
don't believe many will ask herI'm afraid they won'tand if you would, even only once, it would kind of
make up for"he faltered "for out there," he finished, nodding his head in the direction of the gate.
If Eugene vouchsafed any reply, it was lost in a loud, shrill cry from above, as a small, intensely
nervouslooking woman in blue silk ran halfway down the stairs to meet him and caught him tearfully in
her arms.
"Dear old mater!" said Eugene.
Joe went out of the frontdoor quickly.
III. OLD HOPES
The door which Ariel had entered opened upon a narrow hall, and down this she ran to her own room,
passing, with face averted, the entrance to the broad, lowceilinged chamber that had served Roger Tabor as
a studio for almost fifty years. He was sitting there now, in a hopeless and disconsolate attitude, with his back
towards the double doors, which were open, and had been open since their hinges had begun to give way,
when Ariel was a child. Hearing her step, he called her name, but did not turn; and, receiving no answer,
sighed faintly as he heard her own door close upon her.
Then, as his eyes wandered about the many canvases which leaned against the dingy walls, he sighed again.
Usually they showed their brown backs, but today he had turned them all to face outward. Twilight, sunset,
moonlight (the Courthouse in moonlight), dawn, morning, noon (Main Street at noon), high summer, first
spring, red autumn, midwinter, all were thereillimitably detailed, worked to a smoothness like a glaze, and
all lovingly done with unthinkable labor.
And there were "Italian FlowerSellers," damsels with careful hair, two figures together, one blonde, the
other as brunette as lampblack, the blondein pink satin and blue slippersleaning against a pillar and
smiling over the golden coins for which she had exchanged her posies; the brunette seated at her feet,
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 16
Page No 19
weeping upon an unsold bouquet. There were redsashed "Fisher Lads " wading with butterflynets on their
shoulders; there was a "Tying the Ribbon on Pussy's Neck"; there were portraits in oil and petrifactions in
crayon, as hard and tight as the purses of those who had refused to accept them, leaving them upon their
maker's hands because the likeness had failed.
After a time the old man got up, went to his easel near a window, and, sighing again, began patiently to work
upon one of these failuresa portrait, in oil, of a savage old lady, which he was doing from a photograph.
The expression of the mouth and the shape of the nose had not pleased her descendants and the beneficiaries
under the will, and it was upon the images of these features that Roger labored. He leaned far forward, with
his face close to the canvas, holding his brushes after the Spencerian fashion, working steadily through the
afternoon, and, when the light grew dimmer, leaning closer to his canvas to see. When it had become almost
dark in the room, he lit a studentlamp with a greenglass shade, and, placing it upon a table beside him,
continued to paint. Ariel's voice interrupted him at last.
"It's quittingtime, grandfather," she called, gently, from the doorway behind him.
He sank back in his chair, conscious, for the first time, of how tired he had grown. "I suppose so," he said,
"though it seemed to me that I was just getting my hand in." His eyes brightened for a moment. "I declare, I
believe I've caught it a great deal better. Come and look, Ariel. Doesn't it seem to you that I'm getting it?
Those pearly shadows in the flesh"
"I'm sure of it. Those people ought to be very proud to have it." She came to him quietly, took the palette and
brushes from his hands and began to clean them, standing in the shadow behind him. "It's too good for them."
"I wonder if it is," he said, slowly, leaning forward and curving his hands about his eyes so as to shut off
everything from his view except the canvas. "I wonder if it is!" he repeated. Then his hands dropped sadly in
his lap, and he sank back again with a patient kind of revulsion. "No, no, it isn't! I always think they're good
when I've just finished them. I've been fooled that way all my life. They don't look the same afterwards."
"They're always beautiful," she said, softly.
"Ah, ah!" he sighed.
"Now, Roger!" she cried, with cheerful sharpness, continuing her work.
"I know," he said, with a plaintive laugh,"I know. Sometimes I think that all my reward has been in the
few minutes I've had just after finishing them. During those few minutes I seem to see in them all that I
wanted to put in them; I see it because what I've been trying to express is still so warm in my own eyes that I
seem to have got it on the canvas where I wanted it."
"But you do," she said. "You do get it there."
"No," he murmured, in return. "I never did. I got out some of the old ones when I came in this morning, some
that I hadn't looked at for years, and it's the same with them. You can do it much better yourselfyour
sketches show it."
"No, no!" she protested, quickly.
"Yes, they do; and I wondered if it was only because you were young. But those I did when I was young are
almost the same as the ones I paint now. I haven't learned much. There hasn't been any one to show me! And
you can't learn from print, never! Yet I've grown in what I SEE grown so that the world is full of beauty to
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 17
Page No 20
me that I never dreamed of seeing when I began. But I can't paint itI can't get it on the canvas. Ah, I think I
might have known how to, if I hadn't had to teach myself, if I could only have seen how some of the other
fellows did their work. If I'd ever saved money to get away from Canaan if I could have gone away from it
and come back knowing how to paint itif I could have got to Paris for just one month! PARISfor just
one month!"
"Perhaps we will; you can't tell what MAY happen." It was always her reply to this cry of his.
"PARISfor just one month!" he repeated, with infinite wistfulness, and then realizing what an old, old cry
it was with him, he shook his head, impatiently sniffing out a laugh at himself, rose and went pottering about
among the canvases, returning their faces to the wall, and railing at them mutteringly.
"Whatever took me into it, I don't know. I might have done something useful. But I couldn't bring myself
ever to consider doing anything else I couldn't bear even to think of it! Lord forgive me, I even tried to
encourage your father to paint. Perhaps he might as well, poor boy, as to have put all he'd made into buying
Jonas out. Ah me! There you go, `FlowerGirls'! Turn your silly faces to the wall and smile and cry there till
I'm gone and somebody throws you on a bonfire. I'LL never look at you again." He paused, with the canvas
half turned. "And yet," he went on, reflectively, "a man promised me thirtyfive dollars for that picture once.
I painted it to order, but he went away before I finished it, and never answered the letters I wrote him about it.
I wish I had the money nowperhaps we could have more than two meals a day."
"We don't need more," said Ariel, scraping the palette attentively. "It's healthier with only breakfast and
supper. I think I'd rather have a new dress than dinner."
"I dare say you would," the old man mused. "You're youngyou're young. What were you doing all this
afternoon, child?"
"In my room, trying to make over mamma's weddingdress for tonight."
"Tonight?"
"Mamie Pike invited me to a dance at their house."
"Very well; I'm glad you're going to be gay," he said, not seeing the faintly bitter smile that came to her face.
"I don't think I'll be very gay," she answered.
"I don't know why I gonobody ever asks me to dance."
"Why not?" he asked, with an old man's astonishment.
"I don't know. Perhaps it's because I don't dress very well." Then, as he made a sorrowful gesture, she cut him
off before he could speak. "Oh, it isn't altogether because we're poor; it's more I don't know how to wear what
I've got, the way some girls do. I never cared much and well, I'M not worrying, Roger! And I think I've
done a good deal with mamma's dress. It's a very grand dress. I wonder I never thought of wearing it until
today. I may be"she laughed and blushed "I may be the belle of the ballwho knows!"
"You'll want me to walk over with you and come for you afterwards, I expect."
"Only to take me. It may be late when I come awayif a good many SHOULD ask me to dance, for once!
Of course I could come home alone. But Joe Louden is going to sort of hang around outside, and he'll meet
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 18
Page No 21
me at the gate and see me safe home."
"Oh!" he exclaimed, blankly.
"Isn't it all right?" she asked.
"I think I'd better come for you," he answered, gently. "The truth is, II think you'd better not be with Joe
Louden a great deal."
"Why?"
"Well, he doesn't seem a vicious boy to me, but I'm afraid he's getting rather a bad name, my dear."
"He's not getting one," she said, gravely. "He's already got one. He's had a bad name in Canaan for a long
while. It grew in the first place out of shabbiness and mischief, but it did grow; and if people keep on giving
him a bad name the time will come when he'll live up to it. He's not any worse than I am, and I guess my own
name isn't too goodfor a girl. And yet, so far, there's nothing against him except his bad name."
"I'm afraid there is," said Roger. "It doesn't look very well for a young man of his age to be doing no better
than delivering papers."
"It gives him time to study law," she answered, quickly. "If he clerked all day in a store, he couldn't."
"I didn't know he was studying now. I thought I'd heard that he was in a lawyer's office for a few weeks last
year, and was turned out for setting fire to it with a pipe"
"It was an accident," she interposed.
"But some pretty important papers were burned, and after that none of the other lawyers would have him."
"He's not in an office," she admitted. "I didn't mean that. But he studies a great deal. He goes to the courts all
the time they're in session, and he's bought some books of his own."
"Wellperhaps," he assented; "but they say he gambles and drinks, and that last week Judge Pike threatened
to have him arrested for throwing dice with some negroes behind the Judge's stable."
"What of it? I'm about the only nice person in town that will have anything to do with him and nobody
except you thinks I'M very nice!"
"Ariel! Ariel!"
"I know all about his gambling with darkies," she continued, excitedly, her voice rising, "and I know that he
goes to saloons, and that he's an intimate friend of half the riffraff in town; and I know the reason for it, too,
because he's told me. He wants to know them, to understand them; and he says some day they'll make him a
power, and then he can help them!"
The old man laughed helplessly. "But I can't let him bring you home, my dear."
She came to him slowly and laid her hands upon his shoulders. Grandfather and granddaughter were nearly of
the same height, and she looked squarely into his eyes. "Then you must say it is because you want to come
for me, not because I mustn't come with Joe."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 19
Page No 22
"But I think it is a little because you mustn't come with Joe," he answered, "especially from the Pikes'. Don't
you see that it mightn't be well for Joe himself, if the Judge should happen to see him? I understand he
warned the boy to keep away from the neighborhood entirely or he would have him locked up for
dicethrowing. The Judge is a very influential man, you know, and as determined in matters like this as he is
irritable."
"Oh, if you put it on that ground," the girl replied, her eyes softening, "I think you'd better come for me
yourself."
"Very well, I put it on that ground," he returned, smiling upon her
"Then I'll send Joe word and get supper," she said, kissing him.
It was the supperhour not only for them but everywhere in Canaan, and the cold air of the streets bore up
and down and around corners the smell of things frying. The diningroom windows of all the houses threw
bright patches on the snow of the sideyards; the windows of other rooms, except those of the kitchens, were
dark, for the rule of the place was Puritanical in thrift, as in all things; and the good housekeepers disputed
every record of the meters with unhappy gascollectors.
There was no better housekeeper in town than Mrs. Louden, nor a thriftier, but hers was one of the few
houses in Canaan, that evening, which showed bright lights in the front rooms while the family were at
supper. It was proof of the agitation caused by the arrival of Eugene that she forgot to turn out the gas in her
parlor, and in the chamber she called a library, on her way to the evening meal.
That might not have been thought a cheerful feast for Joe Louden. The fatted calf was upon the board, but it
had not been provided for the prodigal, who, in this case, was the brother that stayed at home: the fete
rewarded the good brother, who had been in strange lands, and the good one had found much honor in his
wanderings, as he carelessly let it appear. Mrs. Louden brightened inexpressibly whenever Eugene spoke of
himself, and consequently she glowed most of the time. Her husband a heavy, melancholy, silent man with
a grizzled beard and no mustachelowered at Joe throughout the meal, but appeared to take a strange
comfort in his stepson's elegance and polish. Eugene wore new evening clothes and was lustrous to eye and
ear.
Joe escaped as soon as he could, though not before the count of his later sins had been set before Eugene in
detail, in mass, and in all of their depth, breadth, and thickness. His father spoke but once, after nodding
heavily to confirm all points of Mrs. Louden's recital.
"You better use any influence you've got with your brother," he said to Eugene, "to make him come to time. I
can't do anything with him. If he gets in trouble, he needn't come to me! I'll never help him again. I'm TIRED
of it!"
Eugene glanced twinklingly at the outcast. "I didn't know he was such a roarer as all that!" he said, lightly,
not taking Joe as of enough consequence to be treated as a sinner.
This encouraged Mrs. Louden to pathos upon the subject of her shame before other women when Joe
happened to be mentioned, and the supper was finished with the topic. Joe slipped away through the kitchen,
sneakingly, and climbed the back fence. In the alley he lit a cheap cigarette, and thrusting his hands into his
pockets and shivering violentlyfor he had no overcoat,walked away singing to himself, "A Spanish
cavalier stood in his retreat," his teeth affording an appropriate though involuntary castanet accompaniment.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 20
Page No 23
His movements throughout the earlier part of that evening are of uncertain report. It is known that he made a
partial payment of fortyfive cents at a secondhand bookstore for a number of volumes Grindstaff on
Torts and some otherswhich he had negotiated on the instalment system; it is also believed that he won
twentyeight cents playing sevenup in the little room behind Louie Farbach's bar; but these things are of
little import compared to the established fact that at eleven o'clock he was one of the ball guests at the Pike
Mansion. He took no active part in the festivities, nor was he one of the dancers: his was, on the contrary, the
role of a quiet observer. He lay stretched at full length upon the floor of the enclosed porch (one of the strips
of canvas was later found to have been loosened), wedged between the outer railing and a row of palms in
green tubs. The position he occupied was somewhat too draughty to have been recommended by a physician,
but he commanded, between the leaves of the screening palms, an excellent view of the room nearest the
porch. A long window, open, afforded communication between this room, one of those used for dancing, and
the dim bower which had been made of the veranda, whither flirtatious couples made their way between the
dances.
It was not to play eavesdropper upon any of these that the uninvited Joe had come. He was not there to listen,
and it is possible that, had the curtains of other windows afforded him the chance to behold the dance, he
might not have risked the dangers of his present position. He had not the slightest interest in the whispered
coquetries that he heard; he watched only to catch now and then, over the shoulders of the dancers, a fitful
glimpse of a pretty head that flitted across the window the amber hair of Mamie Pike. He shivered in the
draughts; and the floor of the porch was cement, painful to elbow and knee, the space where he lay cramped
and narrow; but the golden bubbles of her hair, the shimmer of her dainty pink dress, and the fluffy wave of
her lace scarf as she crossed and recrossed in a waltz, left him, apparently, in no discontent. He watched with
parted lips, his pale cheeks reddening whenever those fair glimpses were his. At last she came out to the
veranda with Eugene and sat upon a little divan, so close to Joe that, daring wildly in the shadow, he reached
out a trembling hand and let his fingers rest upon the end of her scarf, which had fallen from her shoulders
and touched the floor. She sat with her back to him, as did Eugene.
"You have changed, I think, since last summer," he heard her say, reflectively.
"For the worse, ma cherie?" Joe's expression might have been worth seeing when Eugene said "ma cherie,"
for it was known in the Louden household that Mr. Bantry had failed to pass his examination in the French
language.
"No," she answered. "But you have seen so much and accomplished so much since then. You have become so
polished and so" She paused, and then continued, "But perhaps I'd better not say it; you might be
offended."
"No. I want you to say it," he returned, confidently, and his confidence was fully justified, for she said:
"Well, then, I mean that you have become so thoroughly a man of the world. Now I've said it! You ARE
offendedaren't you?"
"Not at all, not at all," replied Mr. Bantry, preventing by a masterful effort his pleasure from showing in his
face. "Though I suppose you mean to imply that I'm rather wicked."
"Oh no," said Mamie, with profound admiration, "not exactly wicked."
"University life IS fast nowadays," Eugene admitted. "It's difficult not to be drawn into it!"
"And I suppose you look down on poor little Canaan now, and everybody in it!"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 21
Page No 24
"Oh no," he laughed, indulgently. "Not at all, not at all! I find it very amusing."
"All of it?"
"Not you," he answered, becoming very grave.
"HonestlyDON'T you?" Her young voice trembled a little.
"Honestlyindeedtruly" Eugene leaned very close to her and the words were barely audible.
"You KNOW I don't!"
"Then I'mglad," she whispered, and Joe saw his stepbrother touch her hand, but she rose quickly.
"There's the music," she cried, happily. "It's a waltz, and it's YOURS!"
Joe heard her little high heels tapping gayly towards the window, followed by the heavier tread of Eugene,
but he did not watch them go.
He lay on his back, with the hand that had touched Mamie's scarf pressed across his closed eyes.
The music of that waltz was of the oldfashioned swingingly sorrowful sort, and it would be hard to say how
long it was after that before the boy could hear the air played without a recurrence of the bitterness of that
moment. The rhythmical pathos of the violins was in such accord with a faint sound of weeping which he
heard near him, presently, that for a little while he believed this sound to be part of the music and part of
himself. Then it became more distinct, and he raised himself on one elbow to look about.
Very close to him, sitting upon the divan in the shadow, was a girl wearing a dress of beautiful silk. She was
crying softly, her face in her hands.
IV. THE DISASTER
Ariel had worked all the afternoon over her mother's weddinggown, and two hours were required by her
toilet for the dance. She curled her hair frizzily, burning it here and there, with a slatepencil heated over a
lamp chimney, and she placed above one ear three or four large artificial roses, taken from an old hat of her
mother's, which she had found in a trunk in the storeroom. Possessing no slippers, she carefully blacked and
polished her shoes, which had been clumsily resoled, and fastened into the strings of each small rosettes of
red ribbon; after which she practised swinging the train of her skirt until she was proud of her manipulation of
it. She had no powder, but found in her grandfather's room a lump of magnesia, that he was in the habit of
taking for heartburn, and passed it over and over her brown face and hands. Then a lingering gaze into her
small mirror gave her joy at last: she yearned so hard to see herself charming that she did see herself so.
Admiration came and she told herself that she was more attractive to look at than she had ever been in her
life, and that, perhaps, at last she might begin to be sought for like other girls. The little glass showed a sort of
prettiness in her thin, unmatured young face; tripping dancetunes ran through her head, her feet keeping the
time,ah, she did so hope to dance often that night! Perhapsperhaps she might be asked for every
number. And so, wrapping an old waterproof cloak about her, she took her grandfather's arm and sallied
forth, high hopes in her beating heart.
It was in the dressingroom that the change began to come. Alone, at home in her own ugly little room, she
had thought herself almost beautiful, but here in the brightly lighted chamber crowded with the other girls it
was different. There was a big chevalglass at one end of the room, and she faced it, when her turn
camefor the mirror was popularwith a sinking spirit. There was the contrast, like a picture painted and
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 22
Page No 25
framed. The other girls all wore their hair after the fashion introduced to Canaan by Mamie Pike the week
before, on her return from a visit to Chicago. None of them had "crimped" and none had bedecked their
tresses with artificial flowers. Her alterations of the weddingdress had not been successful; the skirt was too
short in front and higher on one side than on the other, showing too plainly the heavysoled shoes, which had
lost most of their polish in the walk through the snow. The ribbon rosettes were fully revealed, and as she
glanced at their reflection she heard the words, "LOOK AT THAT TRAIN AND THOSE ROSETTES!"
whispered behind her, and saw in the mirror two pretty young women turn away with their handkerchiefs
over their mouths and retreat hurriedly to an alcove. All the feet in the room except Ariel's were in dainty kid
or satin slippers of the color of the dresses from which they glimmered out, and only Ariel wore a train.
She went away from the mirror and pretended to be busy with a hanging thread in her sleeve.
She was singularly an alien in the chattering room, although she had been born and lived all her life in the
town. Perhaps her position among the young ladies may be best defined by the remark, generally current
among them, that evening, to the effect that it was "very sweet of Mamie to invite her." Ariel was not like the
others; she was not of them, and never had been. Indeed, she did not know them very well. Some of them
nodded to her and gave her a word of greeting pleasantly; all of them whispered about her with wonder and
suppressed amusement; but none talked to her. They were not unkindly, but they were young and eager and
excited over their own interests,which were then in the "gentlemen's dressingroom."
Each of the other girls had been escorted by a youth of the place, and, one by one, joining these escorts in the
hall outside the door, they descended the stairs, until only Ariel was left. She came down alone after the first
dance had begun, and greeted her young hostess's mother timidly. Mrs. Pikea small, frightenedlooking
woman with a prominent ruby necklaceanswered her absently, and hurried away to see that the imported
waiters did not steal anything.
Ariel sat in one of the chairs against the wall and watched the dancers with a smile of eager and benevolent
interest. In Canaan no parents, no guardians nor aunts, were haled forth o' nights to duenna the junketings of
youth; Mrs. Pike did not reappear, and Ariel sat conspicuously alone; there was nothing else for her to do. It
was not an easy matter.
When the first dance reached an end, Mamie Pike came to her for a moment with a cheery welcome, and was
immediately surrounded by a circle of young men and women, flushed with dancing, shouting as was their
wont, laughing inexplicably over words and phrases and unintelligible mono syllables, as if they all
belonged to a secret society and these cries were symbols of things exquisitely humorous, which only they
understood. Ariel laughed with them more heartily than any other, so that she might seem to be of them and
as merry as they were, but almost immediately she found herself outside of the circle, and presently they all
whirled away into another dance, and she was left alone again.
So she sat, no one coming near her, through several dances, trying to maintain the smile of delighted interest
upon her face, though she felt the muscles of her face beginning to ache with their fixedness, her eyes
growing hot and glazed. All the other girls were provided with partners for every dance, with several young
men left over, these latter lounging hilariously together in the doorways. Ariel was careful not to glance
towards them, but she could not help hating them. Once or twice between the dances she saw Miss Pike speak
appealingly to one of the superfluous, glancing, at the same time, in her own direction, and Ariel could see,
too, that the appeal proved unsuccessful, until at last Mamie approached her, leading Norbert Flitcroft, partly
by the hand, partly by willpower. Norbert was an excessively fat boy, and at the present moment looked as
patient as the blind. But he asked Ariel if she was "engaged for the next dance," and, Mamie having flitted
away, stood disconsolately beside her, waiting for the music to begin. Ariel was grateful for him
"I think you must be very goodnatured, Mr. Flitcroft," she said, with an air of raillery
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 23
Page No 26
"No, I'm not," he replied, plaintively. "Everybody thinks I am because I'm fat, and they expect me to do
things they never dream of asking anybody else to do. I'd like to see 'em even ASK 'Gene Bantry to go and do
some of the things they get me to do! A person isn't goodnatured just because he's fat," he concluded,
morbidly, "but he might as well be!"
"Oh, I meant goodnatured," she returned, with a sprightly laugh, "because you're willing to waltz with me."
"Oh, well," he returned, sighing, "that's all right."
The orchestra flourished into "La Paloma"; he put his arm mournfully about her, and taking her right hand
with his left, carried her arm out to a rigid right angle, beginning to pump and balance for time. They made
three false starts and then got away. Ariel danced badly; she hopped and lost the step, but they persevered,
bumping against other couples continually. Circling breathlessly into the next room, they passed close to a
long mirror, in which Ariel saw herself, although in a flash, more bitterly contrasted to the others than in the
chevalglass of the dressingroom. The clump of roses was flopping about her neck, her crimped hair looked
frowzy, and there was something terribly wrong about her dress. Suddenly she felt her train to be ominously
grotesque, as a thing following her in a nightmare.
A moment later she caught her partner making a burlesque face of suffering over her shoulder, and, turning
her head quickly, saw for whose benefit he had constructed it. Eugene Bantry, flying expertly by with Mamie,
was bestowing upon Mr. Flitcroft a condescendingly commiserative wink. The next instant she tripped in her
train and fell to the floor at Eugene's feet, carrying her partner with her.
There was a shout of laughter. The young hostess stopped Eugene, who would have gone on, and he had no
choice but to stoop to Ariel's assistance.
"It seems to be a habit of mine," she said, laughing loudly.
She did not appear to see the hand he offered, but got to her feet without help and walked quickly away with
Norbert, who proceeded to live up to the character he had given himself.
"Perhaps we had better not try it again," she laughed.
"Well, I should think not," he returned, with the frankest gloom. With the air of conducting her home he took
her to the chair against the wall whence he had brought her. There his responsibility for her seemed to cease.
"Will you excuse me?" he asked, and there was no doubt that he felt that he had been given more than his
share that evening, even though he was fat.
"Yes, indeed." Her laughter was continuous. "I should think you WOULD be glad to get rid of me after that.
Ha, ha, ha! Poor Mr. Flitcroft, you know you are!"
It was the deadly truth, and the fat one, saying, "Well, if you'll just excuse me now," hurried away with a step
which grew lighter as the distance from her increased. Arrived at the haven of a far doorway, he mopped his
brow and shook his head grimly in response to frequent rallyings.
Ariel sat through more dances, interminable dances and intermissions, in that same chair, in which, it began
to seem, she was to live out the rest of her life. Now and then, if she thought people were looking at her as
they passed, she broke into a laugh and nodded slightly, as if still amused over her mishap.
After a long time she rose, and laughing cheerfully to Mr. Flitcroft, who was standing in the doorway and
replied with a wan smile, stepped out quickly into the hall, where she almost ran into her greatuncle, Jonas
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 24
Page No 27
Tabor. He was going towards the big front doors with Judge Pike, having just come out of the latter's library,
down the hall.
Jonas was breathing heavily and was shockingly pale, though his eyes were very bright. He turned his back
upon his grandniece sharply and went out of the door. Ariel turned from him quite as abruptly and reentered
the room whence she had come. She laughed again to her fat friend as she passed him, and, still laughing,
went towards the fatal chair, when her eyes caught sight of Eugene Bantry and Mamie coming in through the
window from the porch. Still laughing, she went to the window and looked out; the porch seemed deserted
and was faintly illuminated by a few Japanese lanterns. She sprang out, dropped upon the divan, and burying
her face in her hands, cried heartbrokenly. Presently she felt something alive touch her foot, and, her breath
catching with alarm, she started to rise. A thin hand, issuing from a shabby sleeve, had stolen out between
two of the green tubs and was pressing upon one of her shoes.
"'SH!" said Joe. "Don't make a noise!"
His warning was not needed; she had recognized the hand and sleeve instantly. She dropped back with a low
sound which would have been hysterical if it had been louder, while he raised himself on his arm until she
could see his face dimly, as he peered at her between the palms.
"What were you going on about?" he asked, angrily.
"Nothing," she answered. "I wasn't. You must go away, and quick. It's too dangerous. If the Judge found
you"
"He won't!"
"Ah, you'd risk anything to see Mamie Pike"
"What were you crying about?" he interrupted.
"Nothing, I tell you!" she repeated, the tears not ceasing to gather in her eyes. "I wasn't."
"I want to know what it was," he insisted. "Didn't the fools ask you to dance? Ah! You needn't tell me. That's
it. I've been here for the last three dances and you weren't in sight till you came to the window. Well, what do
you care about that for?"
"I don't!" she answered. "I don't!" Then suddenly, without being able to prevent it, she sobbed.
"No," he said, gently, "I see you don't. And you let yourself be a fool because there are a lot of fools in there."
She gave way, all at once, to a gust of sorrow and bitterness; she bent far over and caught his hand and laid it
against her wet cheek. "Oh, Joe," she whispered, brokenly, "I think we have such hard lives, you and I! It
doesn't seem right while we're so young! Why can't we be like the others? Why can't we have some of the
fun?"
He withdrew his hand, with the embarrassment and shame he would have felt had she been a boy. "Get out!"
he said, feebly.
She did not seem to notice, but, still stooping, rested her elbows on her knees and her face in her hands. "I try
so hard to have fun, to be like the rest,and it's always a mistake, always, always, always!" She rocked
herself, slightly, from side to side. "I am a fool, it's the truth, or I wouldn't have come tonight. I want to be
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 25
Page No 28
attractiveI want to be in things. I want to laugh like they do"
"To laugh just to laugh, and not because there's something funny?"
"Yes, I do, I do! And to know how to dress and to wear my hairthere must be some place where you can
learn those things. I've never had any one to show me! Ah! Grandfather said something like that this
afternoonpoor man! We're in the same case. If we only had some one to show us! It all seems so BLIND,
here in Canaan, for him and me! I don't say it's not my own fault as much as being poor. I've been a hoyden; I
don't feel as if I'd learned how to be a girl yet, Joe. It's only lately I've cared, but I'm seventeen, Joe,
andand todaytodayI was sent homeand tonight" She faltered, came to a stop, and her whole
body was shaken with sobs. "I hate myself so for cryingfor everything!"
"I'll tell you something," he whispered, chuckling desperately. "'Gene made me unpack his trunk, and I don't
believe he's as great a man at college as he is here. I opened one of his books, and some one had written in it,
`Prigamaloo Bantry, the Class TryToBe'! He'd never noticed, and you ought to have heard him go on!
You'd have just died, ArielI almost bust wide open! It was a mean trick in me, but I couldn't help showing
it to him."
Joe's object was obtained. She stopped crying, and, wiping her eyes, smiled faintly. Then she became grave.
"You're jealous of Eugene," she said.
He considered this for a moment. "Yes," he answered, thoughtfully, "I am. But I wouldn't think about him
differently on that account. And I wouldn't talk about him to any one but you."
"Not even to" She left the question unfinished.
"No," he said, quietly. "Of course not."
"No? Because it wouldn't be any use?"
"I don't know. I never have a chance to talk to her, anyway."
"Of course you don't!" Her voice had grown steady. "You say I'm a fool. What are you?"
"You needn't worry about me," he began. "I can take care"
"'SH!" she whispered, warningly. The music had stopped, a loud clatter of voices and laughter succeeding it.
"What need to be careful," Joe assured her, "with all that noise going on?"
"You must go away," she said, anxiously. "Oh, please, Joe!"
"Not yet; I want"
She coughed loudly. Eugene and Mamie Pike had come to the window, with the evident intention of
occupying the veranda, but perceiving Ariel engaged with threads in her sleeve, they turned away and
disappeared. Other couples looked out from time to time, and finding the solitary figure in possession,
retreated abruptly to seek stairways and remote corners for the things they were impelled to say.
And so Ariel held the porch for three dances and three intermissions, occupying a great part of the time with
entreaties that her obdurate and reckless companion should go. When, for the fourth time, the music sounded,
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 26
Page No 29
her agitation had so increased that she was visibly trembling. "I can't stand it, Joe," she said, bending over
him.
"I don't know what would happen if they found you. You've GOT to go!"
"No, I haven't," he chuckled. "They haven't even distributed the supper yet!"
"And you take all the chances," she said, slowly, "just to see her pass that window a few times."
"What chances?"
"Of what the Judge will do if any one sees you."
"Nothing; because if any one saw me I'd leave."
"Please go."
"Not till"
"'SH!"
A colored waiter, smiling graciously, came out upon the porch bearing a tray of salad, hot oysters, and coffee.
Ariel shook her head.
"I don't want any," she murmured.
The waiter turned away in pity and was re entering the window, when a passionate whisper fell upon his ear
as well as upon Ariel's.
"TAKE IT!"
"Ma'am?" said the waiter.
"I've changed my mind," she replied, quickly. The waiter, his elation restored, gave of his viands with the
superfluous bounty loved by his race when distributing the product of the wealthy.
When he had gone, "Give me everything that's hot," said Joe. "You can keep the salad."
"I couldn't eat it or anything else," she answered, thrusting the plate between the palms.
For a time there was silence. From within the house came the continuous babble of voices and laughter, the
clink of cutlery on china. The young people spent a long time over their supper. By andby the waiter
returned to the veranda, deposited a plate of colored ices upon Ariel's knees with a noble gesture, and
departed.
"No ice for me," said Joe.
"Won't you please go now?" she entreated!
"It wouldn't be good manners," he responded. "They might think I only came for supper"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 27
Page No 30
"Hand me back the things. The waiter might come for them any minute."
"Not yet. I haven't quite finished. I eat with contemplation, Ariel, because there's more than the mere food
and the warmth of it to consider. There's the pleasure of being entertained by the great Martin Pike. Think
what a real kindness I'm doing him, too. I increase his good deeds and his hospitality without his knowing it
or being able to help it. Don't you see how I boost his standing with the Recording Angel? If Lazarus had
behaved the way I do, Dives needn't have had those worries that came to him in the after life."
"Give me the dish and coffeecup," she whispered, impatiently. "Suppose the waiter came and had to look
for them? Quick!"
"Take them, then. You'll see that jealousy hasn't spoiled my appetite"
A bottleshaped figure appeared in the window and she had no time to take the plate and cup which were
being pushed through the palmleaves. She whispered a syllable of warning, and the dishes were hurriedly
withdrawn as Norbert Flitcroft, wearing a solemn expression of injury, came out upon the veranda.
He halted suddenly. "What's that?" he asked, with suspicion.
"Nothing," answered Ariel, sharply. "Where?"
"Behind those palms."
"Probably your own shadow," she laughed; "or it might have been a draught moving the leaves."
He did not seem satisfied, but stared hard at the spot where the dishes had disappeared, meantime edging
back cautiously nearer the window.
"They want you," he said, after a pause. "Some one's come for you."
"Oh, is grandfather waiting?" She rose, at the same time letting her handkerchief fall. She stooped to pick it
up, with her face away from Norbert and towards the palms, whispering tremulously, but with passionate
urgency, "Please GO!"
"It isn't your grandfather that has come for you," said the fat one, slowly. "It is old Eskew Arp. Something's
happened."
She looked at him for a moment, beginning to tremble violently, her eyes growing wide with fright.
"Is my grandfatheris he sick?"
"You better go and see. Old Eskew's waiting in the hall. He'll tell you."
She was by him and through the window instantly. Norbert did not follow her; he remained for several
moments looking earnestly at the palms; then he stepped through the window and beckoned to a youth who
was lounging in the doorway across the room.
"There's somebody hiding behind those plants," he whispered, when his friend reached him. "Go and tell
Judge Pike to send some of the niggers to watch outside the porch, so that he doesn't get away. Then tell him
to get his revolver and come here."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 28
Page No 31
Meanwhile Ariel had found Mr. Arp waiting in the hall, talking in a low voice to Mrs. Pike.
"Your grandfather's all right," he told the frightened girl, quickly. "He sent me for you, that's all. Just hurry
and get your things."
She was with him again in a moment, and seizing the old man's arm, hurried him down the steps and toward
the street almost at a run.
"You're not telling me the truth," she said. "You're not telling me the truth!"
"Nothing has happened to Roger," panted Mr. Arp. "Nothing to mind, I mean. Here! We're going this way,
not that." They had come to the gate, and as she turned to the right he pulled her round sharply to the left.
"We're not going to your house."
"Where are we going?"
"We're going to your uncle Jonas's."
"Why?" she cried, in supreme astonishment. "What do you want to take me there for? Don't you know that
he's stopped speaking to me?"
"Yes," said the old man, grimly, with something of the look he wore when delivering a clincher at the
"National House,""he's stopped speaking to everybody."
V. BEAVER BEACH
The Canaan Daily Tocsin of the following morning "ventured the assertion" upon its front page that "the
scene at the Pike Mansion was one of unalloyed festivity, music, and mirth; a fairy bower of airy figures
wafting here and there to the throb of waltzstrains; a veritable Temple of Terpsichore, shining forth with a
myriad of lights, which, together with the generous profusion of floral decorations and the mingled delights
afforded by Minds's orchestra of Indianapolis and Caterer Jones of Chicago, was in all likelihood never
heretofore surpassed in elegance in our city. . . . Only one incident," the Tocsin remarked, "marred an
otherwise perfect occasion, and out of regard for the culprit's family connections, which are prominent in our
social world, we withhold his name. Suffice it to say that through the vigilance of Mr. Norbert Flitcroft,
grandson of Colonel A. A. Flitcroft, who proved himself a thorough Lecoq (the celebrated French detective),
the rascal was seized and recognized. Mr. Flitcroft, having discovered him in hiding, had a cordon of waiters
drawn up around his hidingplace, which was the charmingly decorated side piazza of the Pike Mansion, and
sent for Judge Pike, who came upon the intruder by surprise. He evaded the Judge's indignant grasp, but
received a well merited blow over the head from a poker which the Judge had concealed about his person
while pretending to approach the hidingplace casually. Attracted to the scene by the cries of Mr. Flitcroft,
who, standing behind Judge Pike, accidentally received a blow from the same weapon, all the guests of the
evening sprang to view the scene, only to behold the culprit leap through a crevice between the strips of
canvas which enclosed the piazza. He was seized by the colored coachman of the Mansion, Sam Warden, and
immediately pounced upon by the cordon of Caterer Jones's dusky assistants from Chicago, who were in
ambush outside. Unfortunately, after a brief struggle he managed to trip Warden, and, the others stumbling
upon the prostrate body of the latter, to make his escape in the darkness.
"It is not believed by many that his intention was burglary, though what his designs were can only be left to
conjecture, as he is far beyond the age when boys perform such actions out of a sense of mischief. He had
evidently occupied his hiding place some time, and an idea of his coolness may be obtained from his having
procured and eaten a full meal through an unknown source. Judge Pike is justly incensed, and swears that he
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 29
Page No 32
will prosecute him on this and other charges as soon as he can be found. Much sympathy is felt for the
culprit's family, who feel his shame most keenly, but who, though sorrowing over the occurrence, declare that
they have put up with his derelictions long enough, and will do nothing to step between him and the Judge's
righteous indignation."
The Pike Mansion, "scene of festivity, music, and mirth" (not quite so unalloyed, after all, the stricken
Flitcroft keeping his room for a week under medical supervision), had not been the only bower of the dance
in Canaan that evening: another Temple of Terpsichore had shone forth with lights, though of these there
were not quite a myriad. The festivities they illumined obtained no mention in the paper, nor did they who
trod the measures in this second temple exhibit any sense of injury because of the Tocsin's omission. Nay,
they were of that class, shy without being bashful, exclusive yet not proud, which shuns publicity with a
single heartedness almost unique in our republic, courting observation neither in the prosecution of their
professions nor in the pursuit of happiness.
Not quite a mile above the northernmost of the factories on the waterfront, there projected into the river,
near the end of the crescent bend above the town, a long pier, relic of steamboat days, rotting now, and many
years fallen from its maritime uses. About midway of its length stood a huge, crazy shed, long ago utilized as
a freight storeroom. This had been patched and propped, and a dangerouslooking veranda attached to it,
over hanging the water. Above the doorway was placed a sign whereon might be read the words, "Beaver
Beach, Mike's Place." The shore end of the pier was so ruinous that passage was offered by a single row of
planks, which presented an appearance so temporary, as well as insecure, that one might have guessed their
office to be something in the nature of a drawbridge. From these a narrow path ran through a marsh, left by
the receding river, to a country road of desolate appearance. Here there was a rough enclosure, or corral, with
some tumbledown sheds which afforded shelter, on the night of Joseph Louden's disgrace, for a number of
shaggy teams attached to those decrepit and musty vehicles known picturesquely and accurately as
NightHawks. The presence of such questionable shapes in the corral indicated that the dance was on at
Beaver Beach, Mike's Place, as surely as the short line of cabs and family carriages on upper Main Street
made it known that gayety was the order of the night at the Pike Mansion. But among other differences was
this, that at the hour when the guests of the latter were leaving, those seeking the hospitalities of Beaver
Beach had just begun to arrive.
By three o'clock, however, joy at Mike's Place had become beyond question unconfined, and the tokens of it
were audible for a long distance in all directions. If, however, there is no sound where no ear hears, silence
rested upon the countryside until an hour later. Then a lonely figure came shivering from the direction of the
town, not by the road, but slinking through the snow upon the frozen river. It came slowly, as though very
tired, and cautiously, too, often turning its head to look behind. Finally it reached the pier, and stopped as if
to listen.
Within the house above, a piano of evil life was being beaten to death for its sins and clamoring its last cries
horribly. The old shed rattled in every part with the thud of many heavy feet, and trembled with the shock of
noisean incessant roar of men's voices, punctuated with women's screams. Then the riot quieted somewhat;
there was a clapping of hands, and a violin began to squeak measures intended to be Oriental. The next
moment the listener scrambled up one of the rotting piles and stood upon the veranda. A shaft of red light
through a broken shutter struck across the figure above the shoulders, revealing a bloody handkerchief
clumsily knotted about the head, and, beneath it, the face of Joe Louden.
He went to the broken shutter and looked in. Around the blackened walls of the room stood a bleared mob,
applausively watching, through a fog of smoke, the contortions of an old woman in a red calico wrapper, who
was dancing in the centre of the floor. The fiddlera rubicund person evidently not suffering from any great
depression of spirit through the circumstance of being "out on bail," as he was, to Joe's intimate knowledge
sat astride a barrel, resting his instrument upon the foamy tap thereof, and playing somewhat after the manner
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 30
Page No 33
of a 'cellist; in no wise incommoded by the fact that a tall man (known to a few friends as an expert in the
porchclimbing line) was sleeping on his shoulder, while another gentleman (who had prevented many cases
of typhoid by removing old plumbing from houses) lay on the floor at the musician's feet and endeavored to
assist him by plucking the strings of the fiddle.
Joe opened the door and went in. All of the merry company (who were able) turned sharply toward the door
as it opened; then, recognizing the newcomer, turned again to watch the old woman. One or two nearest the
door asked the boy, without great curiosity, what had happened to his head. He merely shook it faintly in
reply, and crossed the room to an open hallway beyond. At the end of this he came to a frowzy bedroom, the
door of which stood ajar. Seated at a deal table, and working by a dim lamp with a broken chimney, a
closecropped, redbearded, redhaired man in his shirtsleeves was jabbing gloomily at a column of
figures scrawled in a dirty ledger. He looked up as Joe appeared in the doorway, and his eyes showed a slight
surprise.
"I never thought ye had the temper to git somebody to split yer head," said he. "Where'd ye collect it?"
"Nowhere," Joe answered, dropping weakly on the bed. "It doesn't amount to anything."
"Well, I'll take just a look fer myself," said the redbearded man, rising. "And I've no objection to not
knowin' how ye come by it. Ye've always been the great one fer keepin' yer mysteries to yerself."
He unwound the handkerchief and removed it from Joe's head gently. "WHEE!" he cried, as a long gash was
exposed over the forehead. "I hope ye left a mark somewhere to pay a little on the score o' this!"
Joe chuckled and dropped dizzily back upon the pillow. "There was another who got something like it," he
gasped, feebly; "and, oh, Mike, I wish you could have heard him going on! Perhaps you didit was only
three miles from here."
"Nothing I'd liked better!" said the other, bringing a basin of clear water from a stand in the corner. "It's a
beautiful thing to hear a man holler when he gits a grand one like ye're wearing tonight."
He bathed the wound gently, and hurrying from the room, returned immediately with a small jug of vinegar.
Wetting a rag with this tender fluid, he applied it to Joe's head, speaking soothingly the while.
"Nothing in the world like a bit o' good cider vinegar to keep off the festerin'. It may seem a trifle scratchy fer
the moment, but it assassinates the bloodp'ison. There ye go! It's the fine thing fer ye, Joewhat are ye
squirmin' about?"
"I'm only enjoying it," the boy answered, writhing as the vinegar worked into the gash. "Don't you mind my
laughing to myself."
"Ye're a good one, Joe!" said the other, continuing his ministrations. "I wisht, after all, ye felt like makin' me
known to what's the trouble. There's some of us would be glad to take it up fer ye, and"
"No, no; it's all right. I was somewhere I had no business to be, and I got caught."
"Who caught ye?"
"First, some nice white people"Joe smiled his distorted smile"and then a lowdown black man helped
me to get away as soon as he saw who it was. He's a friend of mine, and he fell down and tripped up the
pursuit."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 31
Page No 34
"I always knew ye'd git into large trouble some day." The redbearded man tore a strip from an old towel and
began to bandage the boy's head with an accustomed hand. "Yer taste fer excitement has been growin' on ye
every minute of the four years I've known ye."
"Excitement!" echoed Joe, painfully blinking at his friend. "Do you think I'm hunting excitement?"
"Be hanged to ye!" said the redbearded man. "Can't I say a teasing word without gittin' called to order fer it?
I know ye, my boy, as well as ye know yerself. Ye're a queer one. Ye're one of the few that must know all
sides of the world and can't content themselves with bein' respectable! Ye haven't sunk to `low life'
because ye're low yourself, but ye'll never git a damned one o' the respectable to believe it. There's a few
others like ye in the wide world, and I've seen one or two of 'em. I've been all over, steeplechasin',
sailorman, soldier, pedler, and in the POlice; I've pulled the Grand National in Paris, and I've been
handcuffed in HongKong; I've seen all the few kinds of women there is on earth and the many kinds of men.
Yer own kind is the one I've seen the fewest of, but I knew ye belonged to it the first time I laid eyes on ye!"
He paused, then continued with conviction: "Ye'll come to no good, either, fer yerself, yet no one can say ye
haven't the talents. Ye've helped many of the boys out of a bad hole with a word of advice around the courts
and the jail. Who knows but ye'd be a great lawyer if ye kept on?"
Young people usually like to discuss themselves under any conditionshence the rewards of palmistry,
but Joe's comment on this harangue was not so responsive as might have been expected. "I've got seven
dollars," he said, "and I'll leave the clothes I've got on. Can you fix me up with something different?"
"Aha!" cried the redbearded man. "Then ye ARE in trouble! I thought it 'd come to ye some day! Have ye
been dinnymitin' Martin Pike?"
"See what you can do," said Joe. "I want to wait here until daybreak."
"Lie down, then," interrupted the other. "And fergit the hullabaloo in the throneroom beyond."
"I can easily do that"Joe stretched himself upon the bed,"I've got so many other things to remember"
"I'll have the things fer ye, and I'll let ye know I have no use fer seven dollars," returned the red bearded
man, crossly. "What are ye sniffin' fer?"
"I'm thinking of the poor fellow that got the mate to this," said Joe, touching the bandage. "I can't help crying
when I think they may have used vinegar on his head, too."
"Git to sleep if ye can!" exclaimed the Samaritan, as a hideous burst of noise came from the dance room,
where some one seemed to be breaking a chair upon an acquaintance. "I'll go out and regulate the boys a bit."
He turned down the lamp, fumbled in his hippocket, and went to the door.
"Don't forget," Joe called after him.
"Go to sleep," said the redbearded man, his hand on the doorknob. "That is, go to thinkin', fer ye won't
sleep; ye're not the kind. But think easy; I'll have the things fer ye. It's a matter of pride with me that I always
knew ye'd come to trouble."
VI. YE'LL TAK' THE HIGH ROAD AND I'LL TAK' THE LOW ROAD
The day broke with a scream of wind out of the prairies and such cloudbursts of snow that Joe could see
neither bank of the river as he made his way down the big bend of ice. The wind struck so bitterly that now
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 32
Page No 35
and then he stopped and, panting and gasping, leaned his weight against it. The snow on the ground was
caught up and flew like sea spume in a hurricane; it swirled about him, joining the flakes in the air, so that it
seemed to be snowing from the ground upward as much as from the sky downward. Fierce as it was, hard as
it was to fight through, snow from the earth, snow from the sky, Joe was grateful for it, feeling that it veiled
him, making him safer, though he trusted somewhat the change of costume he had effected at Beaver Beach.
A rough, workman's cap was pulled down over his ears and eyebrows; a knitted comforter was wound about
the lower part of his face; under a ragged overcoat he wore blue overalls and rubber boots; and in one of his
redmittened hands he swung a tin dinnerbucket.
When he reached the nearest of the factories he heard the exhaust of its engines long before he could see the
building, so blinding was the drift. Here he struck inland from the river, and, skirting the edges of the town,
made his way by unfrequented streets and alleys, bearing in the general direction of upper Main Street, to
find himself at last, almost exhausted, in the alley behind the Pike Mansion. There he paused, leaning heavily
against a board fence and gazing at the vaguely outlined gray plane which was all that could be made of the
house through the blizzard. He had often, very often, stood in this same place at night, and there was one
window (Mrs. Pike's) which he had guessed to be Mamie's.
The storm was so thick that he could not see this window now, but he looked a long time through the
thickness at that part of the gray plane where he knew it was. Then his lips parted.
"Goodbye, Mamie," he said, softly. "Goodbye, Mamie."
He bent his body against the wind and went on, still keeping to the back ways, until he came to the alley
which passed behind his own home, where, however, he paused only for a moment to make a quick survey of
the premises. A glance satisfied him; he ran to the next fence, hoisted himself wearily over it, and dropped
into Roger Tabor's back yard.
He took shelter from the wind for a moment or two, leaning against the fence, breathing heavily; then he
stumbled on across the obliterated paths of a vegetablegarden until he reached the house, and beginning
with the kitchen, began to make the circuit of the windows, peering cautiously into each as he went, ready to
tap on the pane should he catch a glimpse of Ariel, and prepared to run if he stumbled upon her grandfather.
But the place seemed empty: he had made his reconnaisance apparently in vain, and was on the point of
going away, when he heard the click of the front gate and saw Ariel coming towards him, her old water
proof cloak about her head and shoulders, the patched, scant, faded skirt, which he knew so well, blowing
about her tumultuously. At the sound of the gate he had crouched close against the side of the house, but she
saw him at once.
She stopped abruptly, and throwing the water proof back from her head, looked at him through the driven
fog of snow. One of her hands was stretched towards him involuntarily, and it was in that attitude that he long
remembered her: standing in the drift which had piled up against the gate almost kneedeep, the shabby skirt
and the black waterproof flapping like torn sails, one hand outstretched like that of a figure in a tableau,
her brown face with its thin features mottled with cold and unlovely, her startled eyes fixed on him with a
strange, wild tenderness that held something of the laughter of whole companionship in it mingling with a
loyalty and championship that was almost ferociousshe looked an Undine of the snow.
Suddenly she ran to him, still keeping her hand outstretched until it touched his own.
"How did you know me?" he said.
"Know you!" was all the answer she made to that question. "Come into the house. I've got some coffee on the
stove for you. I've been up and down the street waiting for you ever since it began to get light."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 33
Page No 36
"Your grandfather won't"
"He's at Uncle Jonas's; he won't be back till noon. There's no one here."
She led him to the frontdoor, where he stamped and shook himself; he was snow from head to foot.
"I'm running away from the good Gomorrah," he said, "but I've stopped to look back, and I'm a pretty white
pillar."
"I know where you stopped to look back," she answered, brushing him heartily with her red hands. "You
came in the alley way. It was Mamie's window."
He did not reply, and the only visible token that he had any consciousness of this clairvoyance of hers was a
slight lift of his higher eyebrow. She wasted no time in getting him to the kitchen, where, when she had
removed his overcoat, she placed him in a chair, unwound the comforter, and, as carefully as a nurse, lifted
the cap from his injured head. When the strip of towel was disclosed she stood quite still for a moment with
the cap in her hand; then with a broken little cry she stooped and kissed a lock of his hair, which escaped,
discolored, beneath the bandage.
"Stop that!" he commanded, horribly embarrassed.
"Oh, Joe," she cried, "I knew! I knew it was therebut to SEE it! And it's my fault for leaving youI HAD
to go or I wouldn't haveI"
"Where'd you hear about it?" he asked, shortly.
"I haven't been to bed," she answered. "Grandfather and I were up all night at Uncle Jonas's, and Colonel
Flitcroft came about two o'clock, and he told us."
"Did he tell you about Norbert?"
"Yesa great deal." She poured coffee into a cup from a pot on the stove, brought it to him, then placing
some thin slices of bread upon a gridiron, began to toast them over the hot coals. "The Colonel said that
Norbert thought he wouldn't get well," she concluded; "and Mr. Arp said Norbert was the kind that never die,
and they had quite an argument."
"What were you doing at Jonas Tabor's?" asked Joe, drinking his coffee with a brightening eye.
"We were sent for," she answered.
"What for?"
She toasted the bread attentively without replying, and when she decided that it was brown enough, piled it
on a warm plate. This she brought to him, and kneeling in front of him, her elbow on his knee, offered for his
consideration, looking steadfastly up at his eyes. He began to eat ravenously.
"What for?" he repeated. "I didn't suppose Jonas would let you come in his house. Was he sick?"
"Joe," she said, quietly, disregarding his questions"Joe, have you GOT to run away?"
"Yes, I've got to," he answered.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 34
Page No 37
"Would you have to go to prison if you stayed?" She asked this with a breathless tensity.
"I'm not going to beg father to help me out," he said, determinedly. "He said he wouldn't, and he'll be spared
the chance. He won't mind that; nobody will care! Nobody! What does anybody care what _I_ do!"
"Now you're thinking of Mamie!" she cried. "I can always tell. Whenever you don't talk naturally you're
thinking of her!"
He poured down the last of the coffee, growing red to the tips of his ears. "Ariel," he said, "if I ever come
back"
"Wait," she interrupted. "Would you have to go to prison right away if they caught you?"
"Oh, it isn't that," he laughed, sadly. "But I'm going to clear out. I'm not going to take any chances. I want to
see other parts of the world, other kinds of people. I might have gone, anyhow, soon, even if it hadn't been for
last night. Don't you ever feel that way?"
"You know I do," she said. "I've told you how often! But, Joe, Joe,you haven't any MONEY! You've
got to have money to LIVE!"
"You needn't worry about that," returned the master of seven dollars, genially. "I've saved enough to take care
of me for a LONG time."
"Joe, PLEASE! I know it isn't so. If you could wait just a little whileonly a few weeks,only a FEW,
Joe"
"What for?"
"I could let you have all you want. It would be such a beautiful thing for me, Joe. Oh, I know how you'd feel;
you wouldn't even let me give you that dollar I found in the street last year; but this would be only lending it
to you, and you could pay me back sometime"
"Ariel!" he exclaimed, and, setting his empty cup upon the floor, took her by the shoulders and shook her till
the empty plate which had held the toast dropped from her hand and broke into fragments. "You've been
reading the Arabian Nights! "
"No, no," she cried, vehemently. "Grandfather would give me anything. He'll give me all the money I ask
for!"
"Money!" said Joe. "Which of us is wandering? MONEY? Roger Tabor give you MONEY?"
"Not for a while. A great many things have to be settled first."
"What things?"
"Joe," she asked, earnestly, "do you think it's bad of me not to feel things I OUGHT to feel?"
"No."
"Then I'm glad," she said, and something in the way she spoke made him start with pain, remembering the
same words, spoken in the same tone, by another voice, the night before on the veranda. "I'm glad, Joe,
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 35
Page No 38
because I seemed all wrong to myself. Uncle Jonas died last night, and I haven't been able to get sorry.
Perhaps it's because I've been so frightened about you, but I think not, for I wasn't sorry even before Colonel
Flitcroft told me about you."
"Jonas Tabor dead!" said Joe. "Why, I saw him on the street yesterday!"
"Yes, and I saw him just before I came out on the porch where you were. He was there in the hall; he and
Judge Pike had been having a long talk; they'd been in some speculations together, and it had all turned out
well. It's very strange, but they say now that Uncle Jonas's heart was weakhe was an old man, you know,
almost eighty,and he'd been very anxious about his money. The Judge had persuaded him to risk it; and the
shock of finding that he'd made a great deal suddenly"
"I've heard he'd had that same shock before," said Joe, "when he sold out to your father."
"Yes, but this was different, grandfather says. He told me it was in one of those big risky businesses that
Judge Pike likes to go into. And last night it was all finished, the strain was over, and Uncle Jonas started
home. His house is only a little way from the Pikes', you know; but he dropped down in the snow at his own
gate, and some people who were going by saw him fall. He was dead before grandfather got there."
"I can't be sorry," said Joe, slowly.
"Neither can I. That's the dreadful part of it! They say he hadn't made a will, that though he was sharper than
anybody else in the whole world about any other matter of business, that was the one thing he put off. And
we're all the kin he had in the world, grandfather and I. And they say" her voice sank to a whisper of
excitement"they say he was richer than anybody knew, and that this last business with Judge Pike, the very
thing that killed himsomething about grainmade him five times richer than before!"
She put her hand on the boy's arm, and he let it remain there. Her eyes still sought his with a tremulous
appeal.
"God bless you, Ariel!" he said. "It's going to be a great thing for you."
"Yes. Yes, it is." The tears came suddenly to her eyes. "I was foolish last night, but there had been such a
long time of WANTING things; and nowand now grandfather and I can go"
"You're going, too!" Joe chuckled.
"It's heartless, I suppose, but I've settled it! We're going"
"_I_ know," he cried. "You've told me a thousand times what HE'S said ten times a thousand. You're going to
Paris!"
"Paris! Yes, that's it. To Paris, where he can see at last how the great ones have painted, where the others
can show him! To Paris, where we can study together, where he can learn how to put the pictures he sees
upon canvas, and where I"
"Go on," Joe encouraged her. "I want to hear you say it. You don't mean that you're going to study painting;
you mean that you're going to learn how to make such fellows as Eugene ask you to dance. Go ahead and
SAY it!"
"Yesto learn how to DRESS!" she said.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 36
Page No 39
Joe was silent for a moment. Then he rose and took the ragged overcoat from the back of his chair. "Where's
that muffler?" he asked.
She brought it from where she had placed it to dry, behind the stove.
"Joe," she said, huskily, "can't you wait till"
"Till the estate is settled and you can coax your grandfather to"
"No, no! But you could go with us."
"To Paris?"
"He would take you as his secretary."
"Aha!" Joe's voice rang out gayly as he rose, refreshed by the coffee, toast, and warmth she had given him.
"You've been storyreading, Ariel, like Eugene! `Secretary'!"
"Please, Joe!"
"Where's my tin dinnerpail?" He found it himself upon the table where he had set it down. "I'm going to
earn a dishonest living," he went on. "I have an engagement to take a freight at a watertank that's a friend of
mine, half a mile south of the yards. Thank God, I'm going to get away from Canaan!"
"Wait, Joe!" She caught at his sleeve. "I want you to"
He had swung out of the room and was already at the frontdoor. She followed him closely.
"Goodbye, Ariel!"
"No, no! WAIT, Joe!"
He took her right hand in his own, and gave it a manly shake. "It's all right," he said.
He threw open the door and stepped out, but she sought to detain him. "Oh, have you GOT to go?" she cried.
"Don't you ever worry about me." He bent his head to the storm as he sprang down the steps, and
snowwreaths swirled between them.
He disappeared in a white whirlwind.
She stood for several minutes shivering in the doorway. Then it came to her that she would not know where
to write to him. She ran down to the gate and through it. Already the blizzard had covered his footprints.
VII. GIVE A DOG A BAD NAME
The passing of Joseph from Canaan was complete. It was an evanishment for which there was neither
sackcloth nor surprise; and though there came no news of him it cannot be said that Canaan did not hear of
him, for surely it could hear itself talk. The death of Jonas Tabor and young Louden's crime and flight incited
high doings in the "National House" windows; many days the sages lingered with the broken meats of morals
left over from the banquet of gossip. But, after all, it is with the ladies of a community that reputations finally
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 37
Page No 40
rest, and the matrons of Canaan had long ago made Joe's exceedingly uncertain. Now they made it certain.
They did not fail of assistance. The most powerful influence in the town was ponderously corroborative:
Martin Pike, who stood for all that was respectable and financial, who passed the plate o' Sundays, who held
the fortunes of the town in his left hand, who was trustee for the widow and orphan,Martin Pike, patron of
all worthy charities, courted by ministers, feared by the wicked and idle, revered by the good,Judge Martin
Pike never referred to the runaway save in the accents of an august doomster. His testimony settled it.
In time the precise nature of the fugitive's sins was distorted in report and grew vague; it was recalled that he
had done dread things; he became a tradition, a legend, and a warning to the young; a Richard in the bush to
frighten colts. He was preached at boys caught playing marbles "for keeps": "Do you want to grow up like
Joe Louden?" The very name became a darkling threat, and children of the town would have run had one
called suddenly, "HERE COMES JOE LOUDEN!" Thus does the evil men do live after them, and the ill
fame of the unrighteous increase when they are sped!
Very little of Joseph's adventures and occupations during the time of his wandering is revealed to us; he
always had an unwilling memory for pain and was not afterwards wont to speak of those years which cut the
hard lines in his face. The first account of him to reach Canaan came as directly to the windows of the
"National House" as Mr. Arp, hastening thither from the station, satchel in hand, could bring it.
This was on a September morning, two years after the flight, and Eskew, it appears, had been to the State Fair
and had beheld many things strangely affirming his constant testimony that this unhappy world increaseth in
sin; strangest of all, his meeting with our vagrant scalawag of Canaan. "Not a BLAMEBIT of doubt about it,"
declared Eskew to the incredulous conclave. "There was that Joe, and nobody else, stuck up in a little box
outside a tent at the Fair Grounds, and sellin' tickets to see the Spotted Wild Boy!" Yes, it was Joe Louden!
Think you, Mr. Arp could forget that face, those crooked eyebrows? Had Eskew tested the recognition? Had
he spoken with the outcast? Had he not! Ay, but with such peculiar result that the battle of words among the
sages began with a true onset of the regulars; for, according to Eskew's narrative, when he had delivered
grimly at the boy this charge, "I know you YOU'RE JOE LOUDEN!" the extraordinary reply had been
made promptly and without change of countenance: "POSITIVELY NO FREE SEATS!"
On this, the house divided, one party maintaining that Joe had thus endeavored to evade recognition, the other
(to the embitterment of Mr. Arp) that the reply was a distinct admission of identity and at the same time a
refusal to grant any favors on the score of past acquaintanceship.
Goaded by inquiries, Mr. Arp, who had little desire to recall such waste of silver, admitted more than he had
intended: that he had purchased a ticket and gone in to see the Spotted Wild Boy, halting in his description of
this marvel with the unsatisfactory and acrid statement that the Wild Boy was "simply SPOTTED,"and the
stung query, "I suppose you know what a spot IS, Squire?" When he came out of the tent he had narrowly
examined the ticketseller,who seemed unaware of his scrutiny, and, when not engaged with his tickets,
applied himself to a dirty lawlooking book. It was Joseph Louden, reasserted Eskew, a little taller, a little
paler, incredibly shabby and miraculously thin. If there were any doubt left, his forehead was somewhat
disfigured by the scar of an old woundsuch as might have been caused by a blunt instrument in the nature
of a poker.
"What's the matter with YOU?" Mr. Arp whirled upon Uncle Joe Davey, who was enjoying himself by
repeating at intervals the unreasonable words, "Couldn't of be'n Joe," without any explanation. "Why couldn't
it?" shouted Eskew. "It was! Do you think my eyes are as fur gone as yours? I saw him, I tell you! The same
ornery Joe Louden, run away and sellin' tickets for a side show. He wasn't even the boss of it; the manager
was about the meanestlookin' human I ever saw and most humans look mighty mean, accordin' to my
way of thinkin'! Riffraff of the riffraff are his friends now, same as they were here. Weeds! and HE'S a weed,
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 38
Page No 41
always was and always will be! Him and his kind ain't any more than jimpsons; overrun everything if you
give 'em a chance. Devilflowers! They have to be hoed out and scatteredeven then, like as not, they'll
come back next year and ruin your plantin' once more. That boy Joe 'll turn up here again some day; you'll
see if he don't. He's a seed of trouble and iniquity, and anything of that kind is sure to come back to Canaan!"
Mr. Arp stuck to his prediction for several months; then he began to waver and evade. By the end of the
second year following its first utterance, he had formed the habit of denying that he had ever made it at all,
and, finally having come to believe with all his heart that the prophecy had been deliberately foisted upon
him and put in his mouth by Squire Buckalew, became so sore upon the subject that even the hardiest dared
not refer to it in his presence.
Eskew's story of the ticketseller was the only news of Joe Louden that came to Canaan during seven years.
Another citizen of the town encountered the wanderer, however, but under circumstances so susceptible to
misconception that, in a moment of illumination, he decided to let the matter rest in a golden silence. This
was Mr. Bantry.
Having elected an elaborate course in the Arts, at the University which was of his possessions, what more
natural than that Eugene should seek the Metropolis for the short Easter vacation of his Senior year, in order
that his perusal of the Masters should be uninterrupted? But it was his misfortune to find the Metropolitan
Museum less interesting than some intricate phases of the gayety of New Yorkphases very difficult to
understand without elaborate study and a series of experiments which the discreetly selfish permit others to
make for them. Briefly, Eugene found himself dancing, one night, with a young person in a big hat, at the
"StrawCellar," a crowded hall, down very deep in the town and not at all the place for Eugene.
Acute crises are to be expected at the "Straw Cellar," and Eugene was the only one present who was
thoroughly surprised when that of this night arrived, though all of the merrymakers were frightened when
they perceived its extent. There is no need to detail the catastrophe. It came suddenly, and the knife did not
flash. Sick and thinking of himself, Eugene stood staring at the figure lying before him upon the reddening
floor. A rabble fought with the quick policemen at the doors, and then the lights went out, extinguished by the
proprietor, living up to his reputation for always being thoughtful of his patrons. The place had been a
nightmare; it became a black impossibility. Eugene staggered to one of the open windows, from the sill of
which a man had just leaped.
"Don't jump," said a voice close to his ear. "That fellow broke his leg, I think, and they caught him, anyway,
as soon as he struck the pavement. It's a big raid. Come this way."
A light hand fell upon his arm and he followed its leading, blindly, to find himself pushed through a narrow
doorway and down a flight of tricky, wooden steps, at the foot of which, silhouetted against a street light, a
tall policeman was on guard. He laid masterful hands on Eugene.
"'SH, Mack!" whispered a cautious voice from the stairway. "That's a friend of mine and not one of those you
need. He's only a student and scared to death."
"Hurry," said the policeman, under his breath, twisting Eugene sharply by him into the street; after which he
stormed vehemently: "On yer way, both of ye! Move on up the street! Don't be tryin' to poke yer heads in
here! Ye'd be more anxious to git out, once ye got in, I tell ye!"
A sob of relief came from Bantry as he gained the next corner, the slight figure of his conductor at his side.
"You'd better not go to places like the `StrawCellar,' " said the latter, gravely. "I'd been watching you for an
hour. You were dancing with the girl who did the cutting."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 39
Page No 42
Eugene leaned against a wall, faint, one arm across his face. He was too ill to see, or care, who it was that had
saved him. "I never saw her before," he babbled, incoherently, "never, never, never! I thought she looked
handsome, and asked her if she'd dance with me. Then I saw she seemed queerand wild, and she kept
guiding and pushing as we danced until we were near that manand then shethen it was all
donebefore"
"Yes," said the other; "she's been threatening to do it for a long time. Jealous. Mighty good sort of a girl,
though, in lots of ways. Only yesterday I talked with her and almost thought I'd calmed her out of it. But you
can't tell with some women. They'll brighten up and talk straight and seem sensible, one minute, and promise
to behave, and mean it too, and the next, there they go, making a scene, cutting somebody or killing
themselves! You can't count on them. But that's not to the point, exactly, I expect. You'd better keep away
from the `StrawCellar.' If you'd been caught with the rest you'd have had a hard time, and they'd have found
out your real name, too, because it's pretty serious on account of your dancing with her when she did it, and
the Canaan papers would have got hold of it and you wouldn't be invited to Judge Pike's any more, Eugene."
Eugene dropped his arm from his eyes and stared into the face of his stepbrother.
"Joe Louden!" he gasped.
"I'll never tell," said Joe. "You'd better keep out of all this sort. You don't understand it, and you don'tyou
don't do it because you care." He smiled wanly, his odd distorted smile of friendliness. "When you go back
you might tell father I'm all right. I'm working through a lawschool hereand remember me to Norbert
Flitcroft," he finished, with a chuckle.
Eugene covered his eyes again and groaned.
"It's all right," Joe assured him. "You're as safe as if it had never happened. And I expect" he went on,
thoughtfully"I expect, maybe, you'd prefer NOT to say you'd seen me, when you go back to Canaan. Well,
that's all right. I don't suppose father will be asking after meexactly."
"No, he doesn't," said Eugene, still white and shaking. "Don't stand talking. I'm sick."
"Of course," returned Joe. "But there's one thing I would like to ask you"
"Your father's health is perfect, I believe."
"Ititit was something else," Joe stammered, pitifully. "Are they allare they allall right at at
Judge Pike's?"
"Quite!" Eugene replied, sharply. "Are you going to get me away from here? I'm sick, I tell you!"
"This street," said Joe, and cheerfully led the way.
Five minutes later the two had parted, and Joe leaned against a cheap restaurant signboard, drearily staring
after the lamps of the gypsy night cab he had found for his stepbrother. Eugene had not offered to share the
vehicle with him, had not even replied to his goodnight.
And Joe himself had neglected to do something he might well have done: he had not asked Eugene for news
of Ariel Tabor. It will not justify him entirely to suppose that he assumed that her grandfather and she had left
Canaan never to return, and therefore Eugene knew nothing of her; no such explanation serves Joe for his
neglect, for the fair truth is that he had not thought of her. She had been a sort of playmate, before his flight, a
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 40
Page No 43
friend taken for granted, about whom he had consciously thought little more than he thought about
himselfand easily forgotten. Not forgotten in the sense that she had passed out of his memory, but
forgotten none the less; she had never had a place in his imaginings, and so it befell that when he no longer
saw her from day to day, she had gone from his thoughts altogether.
VIII. A BAD PENNY TURNS UP
Eugene did not inform Canaan, nor any inhabitant, of his adventure of "StrawCellar," nor did any hear of his
meeting with his stepbrother; and after Mr. Arp's adventure, five years passed into the imperishable before
the town heard of the wanderer again, and then it heard at first hand; Mr. Arp's prophecy fell true, and he took
it back to his bosom again, claimed it as his own the morning of its fulfilment. Joe Louden had come back to
Canaan.
The elder Louden was the first to know of his prodigal's return. He was alone in the office of the
woodenbutterdish factory, of which he was the superintendent, when the young man came in
unannounced. He was still pale and thin; his eyebrows had the same crook, one corner of his mouth the same
droop; he was only an inch or so taller, not enough to be thought a tall man; and yet, for a few moments the
father did not recognize his son, but stared at him, inquiring his business. During those few seconds of
unrecognition, Mr. Louden was somewhat favorably impressed with the stranger's appearance.
"You don't know me," said Joe, smiling cheerfully. "Perhaps I've changed in seven years." And he held out
his hand.
Then Mr. Louden knew; he tilted back in his deskchair, his mouth falling open. "Good God!" he said, not
noticing the outstretched hand. "Have YOU come back?"
Joe's hand fell.
"Yes, I've come back to Canaan."
Mr. Louden looked at him a long time without replying; finally he remarked:
"I see you've still got a scar on your forehead."
"Oh, I've forgotten all about that," said the other, twisting his hat in his hands. "Seven years wipes out a good
many grievances and wrongs."
"You think so?" Mr Louden grunted. "I suppose it might wipe out a good deal with some people. How'd you
happen to stop off at Canaan? On your way somewhere, I suppose."
"No, I've come back to stay."
Mr. Louden plainly received this as no pleasant surprise. "What for?" he asked, slowly.
"To practise law, father."
"What!"
"Yes," said the young man. "There ought to be an opening here for me. I'm a graduate of as good a
lawschool as there is in the country"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 41
Page No 44
"You are!"
"Certainly," said Joe, quietly. "I've put myself through, working in the summer"
"Working!" Mr. Louden snorted. "Sideshows?"
"Oh, worse than that, sometimes," returned his son, laughing. "Anything I could get. But I've always wanted
to come back home and work here."
Mr. Louden leaned forward, a hand on each knee, his brow deeply corrugated. "Do you think you'll get much
practice in Canaan?"
"Why not? I've had a year in a good office in New York since I left the school, and I think I ought to get
along all right."
"Oh," said Mr. Louden, briefly. "You do?"
"Yes. Don't you?"
"Who do you think in Canaan would put a case in your hands?"
"Oh, I don't expect to get anything important at the start. But after a while "
"With your reputation?"
The smile which had faded from Joe's lips returned to them. "Oh, I know they thought I was a harumscarum
sort of boy," he answered lightly, "and that it was a foolish thing to run away for nothing; but you had said I
mustn't come to you for help"
"I meant it," said Mr. Louden.
"But that's seven years ago, and I suppose the town's forgotten all about it, and forgotten me, too. So, you see,
I can make a fresh start. That's what I came back for."
"You've made up your mind to stay here, then?"
"Yes."
"I don't believe," said Mr. Louden, with marked uneasiness, "that Mrs. Louden would be willing to let you
live with us."
"No," said Joe, gently. "I didn't expect it." He turned to the window and looked out, averting his face, yet
scoring himself with the contempt he had learned to feel for those who pity themselves. His father had not
even asked him to sit down. There was a long silence, disturbed only by Mr. Louden's breathing, which could
be heard, heavy and troubled.
At last Joe turned again, smiling as before. "Well, I won't keep you from your work," he said. "I suppose
you're pretty busy"
"Yes, I am," responded his father, promptly. "But I'll see you again before you go. I want to give you some
advice."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 42
Page No 45
"I'm not going," said Joe. "Not going to leave Canaan, I mean. Where will I find Eugene?"
"At the Tocsin office; he's the assistant editor. Judge Pike bought the Tocsin last year, and he thinks a good
deal of Eugene. Don't forget I said to come to see me again before you go."
Joe came over to the older man and held out his hand. "Shake hands, father," he said. Mr. Louden looked at
him out of small implacable eyes, the steady hostility of which only his wife or the imperious Martin Pike,
his employer, could quell. He shook his head.
"I don't see any use in it," he answered. "It wouldn't mean anything. All my life I've been a hardworking
man and an abiding man. Before you got in trouble you never did anything you ought to; you ran with the
lowest people in town, and I and all your folks were ashamed of you. I don't see that we've got a call to be
any different now." He swung round to his desk emphatically, on the last word, and Joe turned away and
went out quietly.
But it was a bright morning to which he emerged from the outer doors of the factory, and he made his way
towards Main Street at a lively gait. As he turned the corner opposite the "National House," he walked into
Mr. Eskew Arp. The old man drew back angrily
"Lord 'a' mercy!" cried Joe, heartily. "It's Mr. Arp! I almost ran you down!" Then, as Mr. Arp made no
response, but stood stockstill in the way, staring at him fiercely, "Don't you know me, Mr. Arp?" the young
man asked. "I'm Joe Louden."
Eskew abruptly thrust his face close to the other's. "NO FREE SEATS!" he hissed, savagely; and swept
across to the hotel to set his world afire.
Joe looked after the irate, receding figure, and watched it disappear into the Main Street door of the "National
House." As the door closed, he became aware of a mighty shadow upon the pavement, and turning, beheld a
fat young man, wearing upon his forehead a scar similar to his own, waddling by with eyes fixed upon him.
"How are you, Norbert?" Joe began. "Don't you remember me? I" He came to a full stop, as the fat one,
thrusting out an under lip as his only token of recognition, passed balefully on.
Joe proceeded slowly until he came to the Tocsin building. At the foot of the stairway leading up to the
offices he hesitated for a few moments; then he turned away and walked towards the quieter part of Main
Street. Most of the people he met took no notice of him, only two or three giving him second glances of
halfcognizance, as though he reminded them of some one they could not place, and it was not until he had
come near the Pike Mansion that he saw a full recognition in the eyes of one of the many whom he knew, and
who had known him in his boyhood in the town. A lady, turning a corner, looked up carelessly, and then
halfstopped within a few feet of him, as if startled. Joe's cheeks went a sudden crimson; for it was the lady
of his old dreams.
Seven years had made Mamie Pike only prettier. She had grown into her young womanhood with an
ampleness that had nothing of oversufficiency in it, nor anywhere a threat that some day there might be too
much of her. Not quite seventeen when he had last seen her, now, at twentyfour, her amber hair elaborately
becoming a plump and regular face, all of her old charm came over him once more, and it immediately
seemed to him that he saw clearly his real reason for coming back to Canaan. She had been the
RichLittleGirl of his child days, the golden princess playing in the PalaceGrounds, and in his early
boyhood (until he had grown wicked and shabby) he had been sometimes invited to the Pike Mansion for the
games and icecream of the daughter of the house, before her dancing days began. He had gone timidly, not
daring ever to "call" her in "Quaker Meeting" or "Postoffice," but watching her reverently and
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 43
Page No 46
surreptitiously and continually. She had always seemed to him the one thing of all the world most rare, most
mysterious, most unapproachable. She had not offered an apparition less so in those days when he began to
come under the suspicion of Canaan, when the old people began to look upon him hotly, the young people
coldly. His very exclusion wove for him a glamour about her, and she was more than ever his moon, far,
lovely, unattainable, and brilliant, never to be reached by his lifted arms, but only by his lifted eyes. Nor had
his long absence obliterated that light; somewhere in his dreams it always had place, shining, perhaps, with a
fainter lustre as the years grew to seven, but never gone altogether. Now, at last, that he stood in her very
presence again, it sprang to the full flood of its old brilliance and more!
As she came to her halfstop of surprise, startled, he took his courage in two hands, and, lifting his hat,
stepped to her side.
"Youyou remember me?" he stammered.
"Yes," she answered, a little breathlessly.
"Ah, that's kind of you!" he cried, and began to walk on with her, unconsciously. "I feel like a returned ghost
wandering aboutinvisible and unrecognized. So few people seem to remember me!"
"I think you are wrong. I think you'll find everybody remembers you," she responded, uneasily.
"No, I'm afraid not," he began. "I"
"I'm afraid they do!"
Joe laughed a little. "My father was saying something like that to me a while ago. He meant that they used to
think me a great scapegrace here. Do you mean that?"
"I'd scarcely like to say," she answered, her face growing more troubled; for they were close on the imperial
domain.
"But it's long agoand I really didn't do anything so outrageous, it seems to me." He laughed again. "I know
your father was angry with me once or twice, especially the night I hid on your porch to watch youto
watch you dance, I mean. But, you see, I've come back to rehabilitate myself, to"
She interrupted him. They were not far from her gate, and she saw her father standing in the yard, directing a
painter who was at work on one of the castiron deer. The Judge was apparently in good spirits, laughing
with the workman over some jest between them, but that did not lessen Mamie's nervousness.
"Mr. Louden," she said, in as kindly a tone as she could, "I shall have to ask you not to walk with me. My
father would not like it."
Joe stopped with a jerk.
"Why, II thought I'd go in and shake hands with him,and tell him I"
Astonishment that partook of terror and of awe spread itself instantly upon her face.
"Good gracious!" she cried. "NO!"
"Very well," said Joe, humbly. "Goodbye."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 44
Page No 47
He was too late to get away with any good grace. Judge Pike had seen them, and, even as Joe turned to go,
rushed down to the gate, flung it open, and motioned his daughter to enter. This he did with one wide sweep
of his arm, and, with another sweep, forbade Joe to look upon either moon OR sun. It was a magnificent
gesture: it excluded the young man from the street, Judge Pike's street, and from the town, Judge Pike's town.
It swept him from the earth, abolished him, denied him the right to breathe the common air, to be seen of
men; and, at once a headsman's stroke and an excommunication, destroyed him, soul and body, thus rebuking
the silly Providence that had created him, and repairing Its mistake by annihilating him. This hurling
Olympian gesture smote the street; the rails of the cartrack sprang and quivered with the shock; it thundered,
and, amid the dumfounding uproar of the wrath of a god, the Will of the Canaanite Jove wrote the words in
fiery letters upon the ether:
"CEASE TO BE!"
Joe did not go in to shake hands with Judge Pike.
He turned the next corner a moment later, and went down the quiet street which led to the house which had
been his home. He did not glance at that somewhat grim edifice, but passed it, his eyes averted, and stopped
in front of the long, ramshackle cottage next door. The windows were boarded; the picketfence dropped
even to the ground in some sections; the chimneys sagged and curved; the roof of the long porch sprinkled
shingles over the unkempt yard with every wind, and seemed about to fall. The place was desolate with long
emptiness and decay: it looked like a Haunted House; and nailed to the padlocked gate was a sign, half
obliterated with the winters it had fronted, "For Sale or Rent."
Joe gat him meditatively back to Main Street and to the Tocsin building. This time he did not hesitate, but
mounted the stairs and knocked upon the door of the assistant editor.
"Oh," said Eugene. "YOU'VE turned up, you?"
Mr. Bantry of the Tocsin was not at all the Eugene rescued from the "StrawCellar." The present gentleman
was more the electric Freshman than the frightened adventurer whom Joe had encountered in New York. It
was to be seen immediately that the assistant editor had nothing undaintily businesslike about him, nor was
there the litter on his desk which one might have expected. He had the air of a gentleman dilettante who
amused himself slightly by spending an hour or two in the room now and then. It was the evolution to the
perfect of his Freshman manner, and his lively apparel, though somewhat chastened by an older taste, might
have been foretold from that which had smitten Canaan seven years before. He sat not at the orderly and
handsome desk, but lay stretched upon a divan of green leather, smoking a cigar of purest ray and reading
sleepily a small verselooking book in morocco. His occupation, his general air, the furniture of the room,
and his title (doubtless equipped with a corresponding salary) might have inspired in an observant cynic the
idea that here lay a pet of Fortune, whose position had been the fruit of nepotism, or, mayhap, a successful
wooing of some daughter, wife, or widow. Eugene looked competent for that.
"I've come back to stay, 'Gene," said Joe.
Bantry had dropped his book and raised himself on an elbow. "Exceedingly interesting," he said. "I suppose
you'll try to find something to do. I don't think you could get a place here; Judge Pike owns the Tocsin, and I
greatly fear he has a prejudice against you."
"I expect he has," Joe chuckled, somewhat sadly. "But I don't want newspaper work. I'm going to practice
law."
"By Jove! you have courage, my festive prodigal. VRAIMENT!"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 45
Page No 48
Joe cocked his head to one side with his old look of the friendly puppy. "You always did like to talk that
noveletty way, 'Gene, didn't you?" he said, impersonally.
Eugene's color rose. "Have you saved up anything to starve on?" he asked, crisply.
"Oh, I'm not so badly off. I've had a salary in an office for a year, and I had one pretty good day at the
races"
"You'd better go back and have another," said his stepbrother. "You don't seem to comprehend your
standing in Canaan."
"I'm beginning to." Joe turned to the door. "It's funny, tooin a way. WellI won't keep you any longer. I
just stopped in to say good day" He paused, faltering.
"All right, all right," Eugene said, briskly. "And, bytheway, I haven't mentioned that I saw you in New
York."
"Oh, I didn't suppose that you would."
"And you needn't say anything about it, I fancy."
"I don't think," said Joe,"I don't think that you need be afraid I'll do that. Goodbye."
"Be sure to shut the door, please; it's rather noisy with it open. Goodbye." Eugene waved his hand and sank
back upon the divan.
Joe went across the street to the "National House." The sages fell as silent as if he had been Martin Pike.
They had just had the pleasure of hearing a telephone monologue by Mr. Brown, the clerk, to which they
listened intently: "Yes. This is Brown. Ohoh, it's Judge Pike? Yes indeed, Judge, yes indeed, I hear
youha, ha! Of course, I understand. Yes, Judge, I heard he was in town. No, he hasn't been here. Not yet,
that is, Judge. Yes, I hear. No, I won't, of course. Certainly not. I will, I will. I hear perfectly, I understand.
Yes, sir. Goodbye, Judge."
Joe had begun to write his name in the register. "My trunk is still at the station," he said. "I'll give you my
check to send down for it."
"Excuse me," said the clerk. "We have no rooms."
"What!" cried Joe, innocently. "Why, I never knew more than eight people to stay here at the same time in
my life."
"We have no rooms," repeated the clerk, curtly.
"Is there a convention here?"
"We have no rooms, I say!"
Joe looked up into the condensed eyes of Mr. Brown. "Oh," he said, "I see."
Deathly silence followed him to the door, but, as it closed behind him, he heard the outbreak of the sages like
a tidal wave striking a dumpheap of tin cans.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 46
Page No 49
Two hours later he descended from an evil ark of a cab at the corral attached to Beaver Beach, and followed
the path through the marsh to the crumbling pier. A redbearded man was seated on a plank by the water
edge, fishing.
"Mike," said Joe, "have you got room for me? Can you take me in for a few days until I find a place in town
where they'll let me stay?"
The redbearded man rose slowly, pushed back his hat, and stared hard at the wanderer; then he uttered a
howl of joy and seized the other's hands in his and shook them wildly.
"Glory be on high!" he shouted. "It's Joe Louden come back! We never knew how we missed ye till ye'd
gone! Place fer ye! Can I find it? There ain't a imp o' perdition in town, includin' myself, that wouldn't kill me
if I couldn't! Ye'll have old Maggie's room, my own aunt's; ye remember how she used to dance! Ha, ha!
She's been burnin' below these four years! And we'll have the celebration of yer return this night. There'll be
many of 'em will come when they hear ye're back in Canaan! Praise God, we'll all hope ye're goin' to stay a
while!"
IX. "OUTER DARKNESS"
If any echo of doubt concerning his undesirable conspicuousness sounded faintly in Joe's mind, it was
silenced eftsoons. Canaan had not forgotten himfar from it!so far that it began pointing him out to
strangers on the street the very day of his return. His course of action, likewise that of his friends, permitted
him little obscurity, and when the rumors of his finally obtaining lodging at Beaver Beach, and of the
celebration of his installation there, were presently confirmed, he stood in the limelight indeed, as a
Mephistopheles upsprung through the trapdoor.
The welcoming festivities had not been so discreetly conducted as to accord with the general policy of Beaver
Beach. An unfortunate incident caused the arrest of one of the celebrators and the ambulancing to the hospital
of another on the homeward way, the ensuing proceedings in court bringing to the whole affair a publicity
devoutly unsought for. Mr. Happy Fear (such was the habitual name of the imprisoned gentleman) had to
bear a great amount of harsh criticism for injuring a companion within the city limits after daylight, and for
failing to observe that three policemen were not too distant from the scene of operations to engage therein.
"Happy, if ye had it in mind to harm him," said the redbearded man to Mr. Fear, upon the latter's return to
society, "why didn't ye do it out here at the Beach?"
"Because," returned the indiscreet, "he didn't say what he was goin' to say till we got in town."
Extraordinary probing on the part of the prosecutor had developed at the trial that the obnoxious speech had
referred to the guest of the evening. The assaulted party, one "Nashville" Cory, was not of Canaan, but a bit
of driftwood haply touching shore for the moment at Beaver Beach; and strange is this worldhe had
been introduced to the coterie of Mike's Place by Happy Fear himself, who had enjoyed a brief acquaintance
with him on a day when both had chanced to travel incognito by the same freight. Naturally, Happy had felt
responsible for the proper behavior of his protege was, in fact, bound to enforce it; additionally, Happy had
once been saved from a term of imprisonment (at a time when it would have been more than ordinarily
inconvenient) by help and advice from Joe, and he was not one to forget. Therefore he was grieved to observe
that his own guest seemed to be somewhat jealous of the hero of the occasion and disposed to look coldly
upon him. The stranger, however, contented himself with innuendo (mere expressions of the face and other
manner of things for which one could not squarely lay hands upon him) until such time as he and his sponsor
had come to Main Street in the clear dawn on their way to Happy's apartmenta variable abode. It may be
that the stranger perceived what Happy did not; the three bluecoats in the perspective; at all events, he now
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 47
Page No 50
put into words of simple strength the unfavorable conception he had formed of Joe. The result was
mediaevally immediate, and the period of Mr. Cory's convalescence in the hospital was almost half that of his
sponsor's detention in the county jail.
It needed nothing to finish Joe with the good people of Canaan; had it needed anything, the trial of Happy
Fear would have overspilled the necessity. An item of the testimony was that Joseph Louden had helped to
carry one of the ladies presenta Miss Le Roy, who had fainted to the open air, and had jostled the
stranger in passing. After this, the oldest woman in Canaan would not have dared to speak to Joe on the street
(even if she wanted to), unless she happened to be very poor or very wicked. The Tocsin printed an adequate
account (for there was "a large public interest"), recording in conclusion that Mr. Louden paid the culprit's
fine which was the largest in the power of the presiding judge in his mercy to bestow. Editorially, the Tocsin
leaned to the facetious: "Mr. Louden has but recently `returned to our midst.' We fervently hope that the
distinguished Happy Fear will appreciate his patron's superb generosity. We say `his patron,' but perhaps we
err in this. Were it not better to figure Mr. Louden as the lady in distress, Mr. Fear as the champion in the
lists? In the present case, however, contrary to the rules of romance, the champion falls in duress and passes
to the dungeon. We merely suggest, en passant, that some of our best citizens might deem it a wonderful and
beauteous thing if, in addition to paying the fine, Mr. Louden could serve for the loyal Happy his six months
in the Bastile!"
"En passant," if nothing else, would have revealed to Joe, in this imitation of a better trick, the hand of
Eugene. And, little doubt, he would have agreed with Squire Buckalew in the Squire's answer to the easily
expected comment of Mr. Arp.
"Sometimes," said Eskew, "I think that 'Gene Bantry is jest a leetle bit spiderier than he is lazy. That's the
first thing he's written in the Tocsin this monthone of the boys over there told me. He wrote it out of spite
against Joe; but he'd ought to of done better. If his spite hadn't run away with what mind he's got, he'd of said
that both Joe Louden and that tramp Fear ought to of had ten years!"
"'Gene Bantry didn't write that out of spite," answered Buckalew. "He only thought he saw a chance to be
kind of funny and please Judge Pike. The Judge has always thought Joe was a noaccount"
"Ain't he right?" cried Mr. Arp.
"_I_ don't say he ain't." Squire Buckalew cast a glance at Mr. Brown, the clerk, and, perceiving that he was
listening, added, "The Judge always IS right!"
"Yes, sir!" said Colonel Flitcroft.
"I can't stand up for Joe Louden to any extent, but I don't think he done wrong," Buckalew went on,
recovering, "when he paid this man Fear's fine."
"You don't!" exclaimed Mr. Arp. "Why, haven't you got gumption enough to see"
"Look here, Eskew," interposed his antagonist. "How many friends have you got that hate to hear folks talk
bad about you?"
"Not a one!" For once Eskew's guard was down, and his consistency led him to destruction. "Not a one! It
ain't in human nature. They're bound to enjoy it!"
"Got any friends that would FIGHT for you?"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 48
Page No 51
Eskew walked straight into this hideous trap. "No! There ain't a dozen men ever LIVED that had! Caesar was
a popular man, but he didn't have a soul to help him when the crowd lit on him, and I'll bet old Mark Antony
was mighty glad they got him out in the yard before it happened, HE wouldn't have lifted a finger without
a gang behind him! Why, all Peter himself could do was to cut off an ear that wasn't no use to anybody. What
are you tryin' to get AT?"
The Squire had him; and paused, and stroked his chin, to make the ruin complete. "Then I reckon you'll have
to admit," he murmured, "that, while I ain't defendin' Joe Louden's character, it was kind of proper for him to
stand by a feller that wouldn't hear nothin' against him, and fought for him as soon as he DID hear it!"
Eskew Arp rose from his chair and left the hotel. It was the only morning in all the days of the conclave when
he was the first to leave.
Squire Buckalew looked after the retreating figure, total triumph shining brazenly from his spectacles. "I
expect," he explained, modestly, to the others,"I expect I don't think any more of Joe Louden than he does,
and I'll be glad when Canaan sees the last of him for good; but sometimes the temptation to argue with Eskew
does lead me on to kind of git the better of him."
When Happy Fear had sufferedwith a give andtake simplicity of patiencehis allotment of months in
durance, and was released and sent into the streets and sunshine once more, he knew that his first duty lay in
the direction of a general apology to Joe. But the young man was no longer at Beaver Beach; the redbearded
proprietor dwelt alone there, and, receiving Happy with scorn and pity, directed him to retrace his footsteps to
the town.
"Ye must have been in the black hole of incarceration indeed, if ye haven't heard that Mr. Louden has his
lawoffice on the Square, and his livin'room behind the office. It's in that little brick buildin' straight acrost
from the sheriff's door o' the jailye've been neighbors this long time! A hard time the boy had, persuadin'
any one to rent to him, but by payin' double the price he got a place at last. He's a practisin' lawyer now,
praise the Lord! And all the boys and girls of our acquaintance go to him with their troubles. Ye'll see him
with a murder case to try before long, as sure as ye're not worth yer salt! But I expect ye can still call him by
his name of Joe, all the same!"
It was a bleak and meagre little office into which Mr. Fear ushered himself to offer his amends. The cracked
plaster of the walls was bare (save for dust); there were no shelves; the fat brown volumes, most of them
fairly new, were piled in regular columns upon a cheap pine table; there was but one window, smallpaned
and shadeless; an inner door of this sad chamber stood half ajar, permitting the visitor unreserved
acquaintance with the domestic economy of the tenant; for it disclosed a second room, smaller than the office,
and dependent upon the window of the latter for air and light. Behind a canvas campcot, dimly visible in the
obscurity of the inner apartment, stood a small gasstove, surmounted by a stewpan, from which projected
the handle of a big tin spoon, so that it needed no ghost from the dead to whisper that Joseph Louden,
attorneyatlaw, did his own cooking. Indeed, he looked it!
Upon the threshold of the second room reposed a small, worn, lightbrown scrubbrush of a dog, so
cosmopolitan in ancestry that his species was almost as undeterminable as the castiron dogs of the Pike
Mansion. He greeted Mr. Fear hospitably, having been so lately an offcast of the streets himself that his
adoption had taught him to lose only his old tremors, not his hopefulness. At the same time Joe rose quickly
from the deal table, where he had been working with one hand in his hair, the other splattering ink from a bad
pen.
"Good for you, Happy!" he cried, cheerfully. "I hoped you'd come to see me today. I've been thinking about
a job for you."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 49
Page No 52
"What kind of a job?" asked the visitor, as they shook hands. "I need one bad enough, but you know there
ain't nobody in Canaan would gimme one, Joe."
Joe pushed him into one of the two chairs which completed the furniture of his office. "Yes, there is. I've got
an idea"
"First," broke in Mr. Fear, fingering his shapeless hat and fixing his eyes upon it with embarrassment,"
first lemme say what I come here to say. Iwell" His embarrassment increased and he paused, rubbing
the hat between his hands.
"About this job," Joe began. "We can fix it so"
"No," said Happy. "You lemme go on. I didn't mean fer to cause you no trouble when I lit on that
loudmouth, `Nashville'; I never thought they'd git me, or you'd be dragged in. But I jest couldn't stand him
no longer. He had me all wore outall evening long ahintin' and sniffin' and wearin' that kind of a
highsmile 'cause they made so much fuss over you. And then when we got clear in town he come out with
it! Said you was too quiet to suit HIMsaid he couldn't see nothin' TO you! `Well,' I says to myself, `jest let
him go on, jest one more,' I says, `then he gits it.' And he did. Said you tromped on his foot on purpose, said
he knowed it,when the Lorda'mightiest fool on earth knows you never tromped on no one! Said you was
one of the po'rest young sports he ever see around a place like the Beach. You see, he thought you was jest
one of them fool `Bloods' that come around raisin' a rumpus, and didn't know you was our friend and
belonged out there, the same as me or Mike hisself. `Go on,' I says to myself, `jest one more!' `HE better go
home to his mamma,' he says; `he'll git in trouble if he don't. Somebody 'll soak him if he hangs around in
MY company. _I_ don't like his WAYS.' Then I HAD to do it. There jest wasn't nothin' LEFTbut I
wouldn't of done you no harm by it"
"You didn't do me any harm, Happy."
"I mean your repitation."
"I didn't have oneso nothing in the world could harm it. About your getting some work, now"
"I'll listen," said Happy, rather suspiciously.
"You see," Joe went on, growing red, "I need a sort of janitor here"
"What fer?" Mr. Fear interrupted, with some shortness.
"To look after the place."
"You mean these two rooms?"
"There's a stairway, too," Joe put forth, quickly. "It wouldn't be any sinecure, Happy. You'd earn your money;
don't be afraid of that!"
Mr. Fear straightened up, his burden of embarrassment gone from him, transferred to the other's shoulders.
"There always was a yellow streak in you, Joe," he said, firmly. "You're no good as a liar except when you're
jokin'. A lot you need a janitor! You had no business to pay my fine; you'd ort of let me worked it out. Do
you think my eyes ain't good enough to see how much you needed the money, most of all right now when
you're tryin' to git started? If I ever take a cent from you, I hope the hand I hold out fer it 'll rot off."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 50
Page No 53
"Now don't say that, Happy."
"I don't want a job, nohow!" said Mr. Fear, going to the door; "I don't want to work. There's plenty ways fer
me to git along without that. But I've said what I come here to say, and I'll say one thing more. Don't you
worry about gittin' law practice. Mike says you're goin' to git all you wantand if there ain't no other way,
why, a few of us 'll go out and MAKE some fer ye!"
These prophecies and promises, over which Joe chuckled at first, with his head cocked to one side, grew very
soon, to his amazement, to wear a supernatural similarity to actual fulfilment. His friends brought him their
own friends, such as had sinned against the laws of Canaan, those under the ban of the sheriff, those who had
struck in anger, those who had stolen at night, those who owed and could not pay, those who lived by the
dice, and to his other titles to notoriety was added that of defender of the poor and wicked. He found his
hands full, especially after winning his first important caseon which occasion Canaan thought the jury
mad, and was indignant with the puzzled Judge, who could not see just how it had happened.
Joe did not stop at that. He kept on winning cases, clearing the innocent and lightening the burdens of the
guilty; he became the most dangerous attorney for the defence in Canaan; his honorable brethren, accepting
the popular view of him, held him in personal contempt but feared him professionally; for he proved that he
knew more law than they thought existed; nor could any trick him failing which, many tempers were lost,
but never Joe's. His practice was not all criminal, as shown by the peevish outburst of the eminent Buckalew
(the Squire's nephew, esteemed the foremost lawyer in Canaan), "Before long, there won't be any use trying
to foreclose a mortgage or collect a note unless this shyster gets himself in jail!"
The wrath of Judge Martin Pike was august there was a kind of sublimity in its immenseness on a day
when it befell that the shyster stood betwixt him and money.
That was a monstrous taskto stand between these two and separate them, to hold back the hand of Martin
Pike from what it had reached out to grasp. It was in the matter of some taxtitles which the magnate had
acquired, and, in court, Joe treated the case with such horrifying simplicity that it seemed almost credible that
the great man had counted upon the ignorance and besottedness of Joe's clienta harddrinking,
disreputable old farmerto get his land away from him without paying for it. Now, as every one knew such
a thing to be ludicrously impossible, it was at once noised abroad in Canaan that Joe had helped to swindle
Judge Pike out of a large sum of moneyit was notorious that the shyster could bamboozle court and jury
with his tricks; and it was felt that Joe Louden was getting into very deep waters indeed. THIS was serious: if
the young man did not LOOK OUT, he might find himself in the penitentiary.
The Tocsin paragraphed him with a fine regularity after this, usually opening with a
WalrusandtheCarpenter gravity: "The time has come when we must speak of a certain matter frankly,"
or, "At last the time has arrived when the demoralization of the bar caused by a certain criminal lawyer must
be dealt with as it is and without gloves." Once when Joe had saved a halfwitted negro from "the extreme
penalty" for murder, the Tocsin had declared, with great originality: "This is just the kind of thing that causes
mobs and justifies them. If we are to continue to permit the worst class of malefactors to escape the
consequences of their crimes through the unwholesome dexterities and the shifty manipulations and
technicalities of a certain criminal lawyer, the time will come when an outraged citizenry may take the
enforcement of the law in its own hands. Let us call a spade a spade. If Canaan's streets ever echo with the
tread of a mob, the fault lies upon the head of Joseph Louden, who has once more brought about a
miscarriage of justice. . . ."
Joe did not move into a larger office; he remained in the little room with its one window and its fine view of
the jail; his clients were nearly all poor, and many of his fees quite literally nominal. Tatters and rags came up
the narrow stairway to his door tatters and rags and pitiful fineries: the bleared, the sodden, the flaunting
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 51
Page No 54
and rouged, the furtive and wary, some in rags, some in tags, and some the sorriestin velvet gowns.
With these, the distressed, the wrongdoers, the drunken, the dirty, and the very poor, his work lay and his
days and nights were spent.
Ariel had told Roger Tabor that in time Joe might come to be what the town thought him, if it gave him no
other chance. Only its dinginess and evil surrounded him; no respectable house was open to him; the
barroomsexcept that of the "National House"welcomed him gratefully and admiringly. Once he went to
church, on a pleasant morning when nice girls wear pretty spring dresses; it gave him a thrill of delight to see
them, to be near clean, good people once more. Inadvertently, he took a seat by his stepmother, who rose
with a slight rustle of silk and moved to another pew; and it happened, additionally, that this was the morning
that the minister, fired by the Tocsin's warnings, had chosen to preach on the subject of Joe himself.
The outcast returned to his own kind. No lady spoke to him upon the street. Mamie Pike had passed him with
averted eyes since her first meeting with him, but the shunning and snubbing of a young man by a pretty girl
have never yet, if done in a certain way, prevented him from continuing to be in love with her. Mamie did it
in the certain way. Joe did not wince, therefore it hurt all the more, for blows from which one cringes lose
much of their force.
The town dog had been given a bad name, painted solid black from head to heel. He was a storm centre of
scandal; the entrance to his dingy stairway was in square view of the "National House," and the result is
imaginable. How many of Joe's clients, especially those sorriest of the velvet gowns, were conjectured to
ascend his stairs for reasons more convivial than legal! Yes, he lived with his own kind, and, so far as the rest
of Canaan was concerned, might as well have worn the scarlet letter on his breast or branded on his forehead.
When he went about the streets he was made to feel his condition by the elaborate avoidance, yet furtive
attention, of every respectable person he met; and when he came home to his small rooms and shut the door
behind him, he was as one who has been hissed and shamed in public and runs to bury his hot face in his
pillow. He petted his mongrel extravagantly (well he might!), and would sit with him in his rooms at night,
holding long converse with him, the two alone together. The dog was not his only confidant. There came to
be another, a more and more frequent partner to their conversations, at last a familiar spirit. This third came
from a brown jug which Joe kept on a shelf in his bedroom, a vessel too frequently replenished. When the
day's work was done he shut himself up, drank alone and drank hard. Sometimes when the jug ran low and
the night was late he would go out for a walk with his dog, and would awake in his room the next morning
not remembering where he had gone or how he had come home. Once, after such a lapse of memory, he woke
amazed to find himself at Beaver Beach, whither, he learned from the redbearded man, Happy Fear had
brought him, having found him wandering dazedly in a field near by. These lapses grew more frequent, until
there occurred that which was one of the strange things of his life.
It was a June night, a little more than two years after his return to Canaan, and the Tocsin had that day
announced the approaching marriage of Eugene Bantry and his employer's daughter. Joe ate nothing during
the day, and went through his work clumsily, visiting the bedroom shelf at intervals. At ten in the evening he
went out to have the jug refilled, but from the moment he left his door and the fresh air struck his face, he had
no clear knowledge of what he did or of what went on about him until he woke in his bed the next morning.
And yet, whatever little part of the soul of him remained, that night, still undulled, not numbed, but alive, was
in some strange manner lifted out of its pain towards a strange delight. His body was an automaton, his mind
in bondage, yet there was a still, small consciousness in him which knew that in his wandering something
incredible and unexpected was happening. What this was he did not know, could not see, though his eyes
were open, could not have told himself any more than a baby could tell why it laughs, but it seemed
something so beautiful and wonderful that the night became a night of perfume, its breezes bearing the music
of harps and violins, while nightingales sang from the maples that bordered the streets of Canaan.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 52
Page No 55
X. THE TRYST
He woke to the light of morning amazed and full of a strange wonder because he did not know what had
amazed him. For a little while after his eyes opened, he lay quite motionless; then he lifted his head slightly
and shook it with some caution. This had come to be custom. The operation assured him of the worst; the
room swam round him, and, with a faint groan, he let his head fall back upon the pillow. But he could not
sleep again; pain stung its way through his heart as memory began to come back to him, not of the preceding
nightthat was all blank,but realization that the girl of whom he had dreamed so long was to be married.
That his dreams had been quite hopeless was no balm to his hurt.
A chime of bells sounded from a church steeple across the Square, ringing out in assured righteousness,
summoning the good people who maintained them to come and sit beneath them or be taken to task; and they
fell so dismally upon Joe's ear that he bestirred himself and rose, to the delight of his mongrel, who leaped
upon him joyfully. An hour later, or thereabout, the pair emerged from the narrow stairway and stood for a
moment, blinking in the fair sunshine, apparently undecided which way to go. The church bells were silent;
there was no breeze; the air trembled a little with the deep pipings of the organ across the Square, and, save
for that, the town was very quiet. The paths which crossed the Courthouse yard were flecked with steady
shadow, the strong young foliage of the maples not moving, having the air of observing the Sabbath with
propriety. There were benches here and there along the walks, and to one of these Joe crossed, and sat down.
The mongrel, at his master's feet, rolled on his back in morning ecstasy, ceased abruptly to roll and began to
scratch his ear with a hind foot intently. A tiny hand stretched to pat his head, and the dog licked it
appreciatively. It belonged to a hardwashed young lady of six (in starchy, white frills and new, pink
ribbons), who had run ahead of her mother, a belated churchgoer; and the mongrel charmed her.
"Will you give me this dog?" she asked, without any tedious formalities.
Involuntarily, she departed before receiving a reply. The mother, a redfaced matron whom Joe recognized as
a sister of Mrs. Louden's, consequently his stepaunt, swooped at the child with a rush and rustle of silk, and
bore her on violently to her duty. When they had gone a little way the matron's voice was heard in sharp
reproof; the child, held by one wrist and hurried along on tiptoe, staring back over one shoulder at Joe, her
eyes wide, and her mouth the shape of the "O" she was ejaculating.
The dog looked up with wistful inquiry at his master, who cocked an eyebrow at him in return, wearing much
the same expression. The mother and child disappeared within the church doors and left the Square to the
two. Even the hotel showed no signs of life, for the wise men were not allowed to foregather on Sundays. The
organ had ceased to stir the air and all was in quiet, yet a quiet which, for Louden, was not peace. He looked
at his watch and, without intending it, spoke the hour aloud: "A quarter past eleven." The sound of his own
voice gave him a little shock; he rose without knowing why, and, as he did so, it seemed to him that he heard
close to his ear another voice, a woman's, troubled and insistent, but clear and sweet, saying:
"REMEMBER! ACROSS MAIN STREET BRIDGE AT NOON!"
It was so distinct that he started and looked round. Then he laughed. "I'll be seeing circus parades next!" His
laughter fled, for, louder than the ringing in his ears, unmistakably came the strains of a faraway brass band
which had no existence on land or sea or in the waters under the earth.
"Here!" he said to the mongrel. "We need a walk, I think. Let's you and me move on before the camels turn
the corner!"
The music followed him to the street, where he turned westward toward the river, and presently, as he walked
on, fanning himself with his straw hat, it faded and was gone. But the voice he had heard returned.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 53
Page No 56
"REMEMBER! ACROSS MAIN STREET BRIDGE AT NOON!" it said again, close to his ear.
This time he did not start. "All right," he answered, wiping his forehead; "if you'll let me alone, I'll be there."
At a dingy saloon corner, near the river, a shabby little man greeted him heartily and petted the mongrel. "I'm
mighty glad you didn't go, after all, Joe," he added, with a brightening face.
"Go where, Happy?"
Mr. Fear looked grave. "Don't you rec'lect meetin' me last night?"
Louden shook his head. "No. Did I?"
The other's jaw fell and his brow corrugated with selfreproach. "Well, if that don't show what a thickhead I
am! I thought ye was all right er I'd gone on with ye. Nobody c'd 'a' walked straighter ner talked straighter.
Said ye was goin' to leave Canaan fer good and didn't want nobody to know it. Said ye was goin' to take the
'leveno'clock through train fer the West, and told me I couldn't come to the deepo with ye. Said ye'd had
enough o' Canaan, and of everything! I follered ye part way to the deepo, but ye turned and made a motion
fer me to go back, and I done it, because ye seemed to be kind of in trouble, and I thought ye'd ruther be by
yerself. Well, sir, it's one on me!"
"Not at all," said Joe. "I was all right."
"Was ye?" returned the other. "DO remember, do ye?"
"Almost," Joe smiled, faintly.
"ALMOST," echoed Happy, shaking his head seriously. "I tell ye, Joe, ef I was YOU" he began slowly,
then paused and shook his head again. He seemed on the point of delivering some advice, but evidently
perceiving the snobbishness of such a proceeding, or else convinced by his own experience of the futility of
it, he swerved to cheerfulness:
"I hear the boys is all goin' to work hard fer the primaries. Mike says ye got some chances ye don't know
about; HE swears ye'll be the next Mayor of Canaan."
"Nonsense! Folly and nonsense, Happy! That's the kind of thing I used to think when I was a boy. But
nowpshaw!" Joe broke off with a tired laugh. "Tell them not to waste their time. Are you going out to the
Beach this afternoon?"
The little man lowered his eyes moodily. "I'll be near there," he said, scraping his patched shoe up and down
the curbstone. "That feller's in town agin."
"What fellow?"
"`Nashville' they call him; Ed's the name he give the hospital: Coryhim that I soaked the night you come
back to Canaan. He's after Claudine to git his evens with me. He's made a raise somewheres, and plays the
spender. And herwell, I reckon she's tired waitin' table at the National House; tired o' me, too. I got a hint
that they're goin' out to the Beach together this afternoon."
Joe passed his hand wearily over his aching forehead. "I understand," he said, "and you'd better try to. Cory's
laying for you, of course. You say he's after your wife? He must have set about it pretty openly if they're
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 54
Page No 57
going to the Beach today, for there is always a crowd there on Sundays. Is it hard for you to see why he's
doing it? It's because he wants to make you jealous. What for? So that you'll tackle him again. And why does
he want that? Because he's ready for you!"
The other's eyes suddenly became bloodshot, his nostrils expanding incredibly. "READY, is he? He BETTER
be ready. I"
"That's enough!" Joe interrupted, swiftly. "We'll have no talk like that. I'll settle this for you, myself. You
send word to Claudine that I want to see her at my office tomorrow morning, and youyou stay away from
the Beach today. Give me your word."
Mr. Fear's expression softened. "All right, Joe," he said. "I'll do whatever you tell me to. Any of us 'll do that;
we sure know who's our friend."
"Keep out of trouble, Happy." Joe turned to go and they shook hands. "Good day, andkeep out of trouble!"
When he had gone, Mr. Fear's countenance again gloomed ominously, and, shaking his head, he ruminatively
entered an adjacent bar through the alley door.
The Main Street bridge was an oldfashioned, wooden, covered one, dustcolored and very narrow, squarely
framing the fair, open country beyond; for the town had never crossed the river. Joe found the cool shadow in
the bridge gracious to his hot brow, and through the slender chinks of the worn flooring he caught bright
glimpses of running water. When he came out of the other end he felt enough refreshed to light a cigar.
"Well, here I am," he said. "Across Main Street bridgeand it must be getting on toward noon!" He spoke
almost with the aspect of daring, and immediately stood still, listening. "`REMEMBER,"' he ventured to
repeat, again daring, "`REMEMBER! ACROSS MAIN STREET BRIDGE AT NOON!' " And again he
listened. Then he chuckled faintly with relief, for the voice did not return. "Thank God, I've got rid of that!"
he whispered. "And of the circus band too!"
A dust road turned to the right, following the river and shaded by big sycamores on the bank; the mongrel,
intensely preoccupied with this road, scampered away, his nose to the ground. "Good enough," said the
master. "Lead on and I'll come after you."
But he had not far to follow. The chase led him to a halfhollow log which lay on a low, grass grown levee
above the stream, where the dog's interest in the pursuit became vivid; temporarily, however, for after a few
minutes of agitated investigation, he was seized with indifference to the whole world; panted briefly; slept.
Joe sat upon the log, which was in the shade, and smoked.
"`REMEMBER!' " He tried it once more. "`ACROSS MAIN STREET BRIDGE AT NOON!' " Safety still;
the voice came not. But the sound of his own repetition of the words brought him an eerie tremor; for the mist
of a memory came with it; nothing tangible, nothing definite, but something very far away and shadowy, yet
just poignant enough to give him a queer feeling that he was really keeping an appointment here. Was it with
some water sprite that would rise from the river? Was it with a dryad of the sycamores? He knew too well
that he might expect strange fancies to get hold of him this morning, and, as this one grew uncannily stronger,
he moved his head briskly as if to shake it off. The result surprised him; the fancy remained, but his headache
and dizziness had left him.
A breeze wandered up the river and touched the leaves and grass to life. Sparrows hopped and chirped in the
branches, absurdly surprised; without doubt having concluded in the Sunday stillness that the world would
drowse forever; and the mongrel lifted his head, blinked at them, hopelessly wishing they would alight near
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 55
Page No 58
him, scratched his ear with the manner of one who has neglected such matters overlong; reversed his
position; slept again. The young corn, deep green in the bottomland, moved with a staccato flurry, and the
dust ghost of a mad whirling dervish sped up the main road to vanish at the bridge in a climax of lunacy. The
stirring air brought a smell of blossoms; the distance took on faint lavender hazes which blended the outlines
of the fields, lying like square coverlets upon the long slope of rising ground beyond the bottomland, and
empurpled the blue woodland shadows of the groves.
For the first time, it struck Joe that it was a beautiful day, and it came to him that a beautiful day was a thing
which nothing except death, sickness, or imprisonment could take from himnot even the ban of Canaan!
Unforewarned, music sounded in his ears again; but he did not shrink from it now; this was not the circus
band he had heard as he left the Square, but a melody like a faraway serenade at night, as of "the horns of
elfland faintly blowing"; and he closed his eyes with the sweetness of it.
"Go ahead!" he whispered. "Do that all you want to. If you'll keep it up like this awhile, I'll follow with
`Little Brown Jug, How I Love Thee!' It seems to pay, after all!"
The welcome strains, however, were but the prelude to a harsher sound which interrupted and annihilated
them: the Courthouse bell clanging out twelve. "All right," said Joe. "It 's noon and I'm `across Main Street
bridge.' "
He opened his eyes and looked about him whimsically. Then he shook his head again.
A lady had just emerged from the bridge and was coming toward him.
It would be hard to get at Joe's first impressions of her. We can find conveyance for only the broadest and
heaviest. Ancient and modern instances multiply the case of the sleeper who dreams out a long story in
accurate color and fine detail, a tale of years, in the opening and shutting of a door. So with Joseph, in the
brief space of the lady's approach. And with him, as with the sleeper, it must have beenin fact it was, in his
recollections, latera blur of emotion.
At first sight of her, perhaps it was preeminently the shock of seeing anything so exquisite where he had
expected to see nothing at all. For she was exquisitehorrid as have been the uses of the word, its best and
truest belong to her; she was that and much more, from the ivory ferrule of the parasol she carried, to the light
and slender footprint she left in the dust of the road. Joe knew at once that nothing like her had ever before
been seen in Canaan.
He had little knowledge of the millinery arts, and he needed none to see the harmonyharmony like that of
the day he had discovered a little while ago. Her dress and hat and gloves and parasol showed a pale lavender
overtint like that which he had seen overspreading the western slope. (Afterward, he discovered that the
gloves she wore that day were gray, and that her hat was for the most part white.) The charm of fabric and
tint belonging to what she wore was no shame to her, not being of primal importance beyond herself; it was
but the expression of her daintiness and the adjunct of it. She was tall, but if Joe could have spoken or
thought of her as "slender," he would have been capable of calling her lips "red," in which case he would not
have been Joe, and would have been as far from the truth as her lips were from red, or as her supreme
delicateness was from mere slenderness.
Under the summer hat her very dark hair swept back over her temples with something near trimness in the
extent to which it was withheld from being fluffy. It may be that this approach to trimness, which was, after
all, only a sort of coquetry with trimness, is the true key to the mystery of the vision of the lady who appeared
to Joe. Let us say that she suppressed everything that went beyond grace; that the hint of floridity was
abhorrent to her. "Trim" is as clumsy as "slender"; she had escaped from the trimness of girlhood as wholly
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 56
Page No 59
as she had gone through its coltishness. "Exquisite." Let us go back to Joe's own blurred first thought of her
and be content with that!
She was to pass himso he thoughtand as she drew nearer, his breath came faster.
"REMEMBER! ACROSS MAIN STREET BRIDGE AT NOON!" Was THIS the fay of whom the voice had
warned him? With that, there befell him the mystery of last night. He did not remember, but it was as if he
lived again, dimly, the highest hour of happiness in a life a thousand years ago; perfume and music, roses,
nightingales and plucked harp strings. Yes; something wonderful was happening to him.
She had stopped directly in front of him; stopped and stood looking at him with her clear eyes. He did not lift
his own to hers; he had long experience of the averted gaze of women; but it was not only that; a great
shyness beset him. He had risen and removed his hat, trying (ineffectually) not to clear his throat; his
everyday sense urging upon him that she was a stranger in Canaan who had lost her waythe
preposterousness of any one's losing the way in Canaan not just now appealing to his everyday sense.
"Can Ican I" he stammered, blushing miserably, meaning to finish with "direct you," or "show you the
way."
Then he looked at her again and saw what seemed to him the strangest sight of his life. The lady's eyes had
filled with tearsfilled and overfilled. "I'll sit here on the log with you," she said. And her voice was the voice
which he had heard saying, "REMEMBER! ACROSS MAIN STREET BRIDGE AT NOON!"
"WHAT!" he gasped.
"You don't need to dust it!" she went on, tremulously. And even then he did not know who she was.
XI. WHEN HALFGODS GO
There was a silence, for if the dazzled young man could have spoken at all, The could have found nothing to
say; and, perhaps, the lady would not trust her own voice just then. His eyes had fallen again; he was too
dazed, and, in truth, too panicstricken, now, to look at her, though if he had been quite sure that she was part
of a wonderful dream he might have dared. She was seated beside him, and had handed him her parasol in a
little way which seemed to imply that of course he had reached for it, so that it was to be seen how used she
was to have all tiny things done for her, though this was not then of his tremulous observing. He did perceive,
however, that he was to furl the dainty thing; he pressed the catch, and let down the top timidly, as if fearing
to break or tear it; and, as it closed, held near his face, he caught a very faint, sweet, spicy emanation from it
like wild roses and cinnamon.
He did not know her; but his timidity and a strange little choke in his throat, the sudden fright which had
seized upon him, were not caused by embarrassment. He had no thought that she was one he had known but
could not, for the moment, recall; there was nothing of the awkwardness of that; no, he was overpowered by
the miracle of this meeting. And yet, white with marvelling, he felt it to be so much more touchingly a great
happiness than he had ever known that at first it was inexpressibly sad.
At last he heard her voice again, shaking a little, as she said:
"I am glad you remembered."
"Remembered what?" he faltered.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 57
Page No 60
"Then you don't?" she cried. "And yet you came."
"Came here, do you mean?"
"Yesnow, at noon."
"Ah!" he half whispered, unable to speak aloud. "Was it you who saidwho said, `Remember!
Acrossacross"'
"`Across Main Street bridge at noon!' " she finished for him, gently. "Yes."
He took a deep breath in the wonder of it. "Where was it you said that?" he asked, slowly. "Was it last night?"
"Don't you even know that you came to meet me?"
"_I_came toto meetyou!"
She gave a little pitying cry, very near a sob, seeing his utter bewilderment.
"It was like the strangest dream in the world," she said. "You were at the station when I came, last night. You
don't remember at all?"
His eyes downcast, his face burning hotly, he could only shake his head.
"Yes," she continued. "I thought no one would be there, for I had not written to say what train I should take,
but when I stepped down from the platform, you were standing there; though you didn't see me at first, not
until I had called your name and ran to you. You said, `I've come to meet you,' but you said it queerly, I
thought. And then you called a carriage for me; but you seemed so strange you couldn't tell how you knew
that I was coming, andand then II understood you weren't yourself. You were very quiet, but I knew, I
knew! So I made you get into the carriageandand"
She faltered to a stop, and with that, shame itself brought him courage; he turned and faced her. She had lifted
her handkerchief to her eyes, but at his movement she dropped it, and it was not so much the delicate
loveliness of her face that he saw then as the tears upon her cheeks.
"Ah, poor boy!" she cried. "I knew! I knew!"
"Youyou took me home?"
"You told me where you lived," she answered. "Yes, I took you home."
"I don't understand," he stammered, huskily. "I don't understand!"
She leaned toward him slightly, looking at him with great intentness.
"You didn't know me last night," she said. "Do you know me now?"
For answer he could only stare at her, dumfounded. He lifted an unsteady hand toward her appealingly. But
the manner of the lady, as she saw the truth, underwent an April change. She drew back lightly; he was
favored with the most delicious, low laugh he had ever heard, and, by some magic whisk which she
accomplished, there was no sign of tears about her.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 58
Page No 61
"Ah! I'm glad you're the same, Joe!" she said. "You never would or could pretend very well. I'm glad you're
the same, and I'm glad I've changed, though that isn't why you have forgotten me. You've forgotten me
because you never thought of me. Perhaps I should not have known you if you had changed a great dealas
I have!"
He started, leaning back from her.
"Ah!" she laughed. "That's it! That funny little twist of the head you always had, like a like awell, you
know I must have told you a thousand times that it was like a nice friendly puppy; so why shouldn't I say so
now? And your eyebrows! When you look like that, nobody could ever forget you, Joe!"
He rose from the log, and the mongrel leaped upon him uproariously, thinking they were to go home, belike
to food.
The lady laughed again. "Don't let him spoil my parasol. And I must warn you now: Never, never TREAD
ON MY SKIRT! I'm very irritable about such things!"
He had taken three or four uncertain backward steps from her. She sat before him, radiant with laughter, the
loveliest creature he had ever seen; but between him and this charming vision there swept, through the warm,
scented June air, a veil of snow like a driven fog, and, half obscured in the heart of it, a young girl stood,
kneedeep in a drift piled against an old picket gate, her black water proof and shabby skirt flapping in the
blizzard like torn sails, one of her hands outstretched toward him, her startled eyes fixed on his.
"And, oh, how like you," said the lady; "how like you and nobody else in the world, Joe, to have a yellow
dog!"
"ARIEL TABOR!"
His lips formed the words without sound.
"Isn't it about time?" she said. "Are strange ladies in the HABIT of descending from trains to take you
home?"
Once, upon a white morning long ago, the sensational progress of a certain youth up Main Street had stirred
Canaan. But that day was as nothing to this. Mr. Bantry had left temporary paralysis in his wake; but in the
case of the two young people who passed slowly along the street today it was petrifaction, which seemingly
threatened in several instances (most notably that of Mr. Arp) to become permanent.
The lower portion of the street, lined with three and four story buildings of brick and stone, rather grim and
hot facades under the midday sun, afforded little shade to the churchcomers, who were working homeward
in processional little groups and clumps, none walking fast, though none with the appearance of great leisure,
since neither rate of progress would have been esteemed befitting the day. The growth of Canaan, steady,
though never startling, had left almost all of the churches downtown, and Main Street the principal avenue
of communication between them and the "residence section." So, today, the intermittent procession
stretched along the new cement side walks from a little below the Square to Upper Main Street, where
maples lined the thoroughfare and the mansions of the affluent stood among pleasant lawns and shrubberies.
It was late; for this had been a communion Sunday, and those far in advance, who had already reached the
pretty and shady part of the street, were members of the churches where services had been shortest; though
few in the long parade looked as if they had been attending anything very short, and many heads of families
were crisp in their replies to the theological inquiries of their offspring. The men imparted largely a gloom to
the itinerant concourse, most of them wearing hot, long black coats and having wilted their collars; the ladies
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 59
Page No 62
relieving this gloom somewhat by the lighter tints of their garments; the spickandspan little girls relieving
it greatly by their white dresses and their faces, the latter bright with the hope of Sunday icecream; while the
boys, experiencing some solace in that they were finally out where a person could at least scratch himself if
he had to, yet oppressed by the decorous necessities of the day, marched along, furtively planning, behind
imperturbably secretive countenances, various means for the later dispersal of an odious monotony.
Usually the conversation of this long string of the homewardbound was not too frivolous or worldly; nay, it
properly inclined to discussion of the sermon; that is, praise of the sermon, with here and there a mild
"Ididn'tlikehissaying" or so; and its lighter aspects were apt to concern the next "Social," or various
pleasurable schemes for the raising of funds to help the heathen, the quite worthy poor, or the church.
This was the serious and seemly parade, the propriety of whose behavior was today almost disintegrated
when the lady of the bridge walked up the street in the shadow of a lacy, lavender parasol carried by Joseph
Louden. The congregation of the church across the Square, that to which Joe's stepaunt had been late, was
just debouching, almost in mass, upon Main Street, when these two went by. It is not quite the truth to say
that all except the children came to a dead halt, but it is not very far from it. The air was thick with subdued
exclamations and whisperings.
Here is no mystery. Joe was probably the only person of respectable derivation in Canaan who had not known
for weeks that Ariel Tabor was on her way home. And the news that she had arrived the night before had
been widely disseminated on the way to church, entering church, IN church (even so!), and coming out of
church. An account of her house in the Avenue Henri Martin, and of her portrait in the Salona mysterious
business to many, and not lacking in grandeur for that!had occupied two columns in the Tocsin, on a day,
some months before, when Joe had found himself inimically head lined on the first page, and had dropped
the paper without reading further. Ariel's name had been in the mouth of Canaan for a long time;
unfortunately for Joe, however, not in the mouth of that Canaan which held converse with him.
Joe had not known her. The women recognized her, infallibly, at first glance; even those who had quite
forgotten her. And the women told their men. Hence the unSundaylike demeanor of the procession, for
few towns hold it more unseemly to stand and stare at passersby, especially on the Sabbath.BUT Ariel
Tabor returnedand walking withWITH JOE LOUDEN! . . .
A low but increasing murmur followed the two as they proceeded. It ran up the street ahead of them; people
turned to look back and paused, so that they had to walk round one or two groups. They had, also, to walk
round Norbert Flitcroft, which was very like walking round a group. He was one of the few (he was waddling
home alone) who did not identify Miss Tabor, and her effect upon him was extraordinary. His mouth opened
and he gazed stodgily, his widening eyes like sundogs coming out of a fog. He did not recognize her escort;
did not see him at all until they had passed, after which Mr. Flitcroft experienced a few moments of trance;
came out of it stricken through and through; felt nervously of his tie; resolutely fell in behind the heeling
mongrel and followed, at a distance of some forty paces, determined to learn what household this heavenly
visitor honored, and thrilling with the intention to please that same household with his own presence as soon
and as often as possible.
Ariel flushed a little when she perceived the extent of their conspicuousness; but it was not the blush that Joe
remembered had reddened the tanned skin of old; for her brownness had gone long ago, though it had not left
her merely pink and white. This was a delicate rosiness rising from her cheeks to her temples as the earliest
dawn rises. If there had been many words left in Joe, he would have called it a divine blush; it fascinated him,
and if anything could have deepened the glamour about her, it would have been this blush. He did not
understand it, but when he saw it he stumbled.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 60
Page No 63
Those who gaped and stared were for him only blurs in the background; truly, he saw "men as trees walking";
and when it became necessary to step out to the curb in passing some clump of people, it was to him as if
Ariel and he, enchantedly alone, were working their way through underbrush in the woods.
He kept trying to realize that this lady of wonder was Ariel Tabor, but he could not; he could not connect the
shabby Ariel, whom he had treated as one boy treats another, with this young woman of the world. He had
always been embarrassed, himself, and ashamed of her, when anything she did made him remember that,
after all, she was a girl; as, on the day he ran away, when she kissed a lock of his hair escaping from the
bandage. With that recollection, even his ears grew red: it did not seem probable that it would ever happen
again! The next instant he heard himself calling her "Miss Tabor."
At this she seemed amused. "You ought to have called me that, years ago," she said, "for all you knew me!"
"I did know herYOU, I mean!" he answered. "I used to know nearly everything you were going to say
before you said it. It seems strange now"
"Yes," she interrupted. "It does seem strange now!"
"Somehow," he went on, "I doubt if now I'd know."
"Somehow," she echoed, with fine gravity, "I doubt it, too."
Although he had so dim a perception of the staring and whispering which greeted and followed them, Ariel,
of course, was thoroughly aware of it, though the only sign she gave was the slight blush, which very soon
disappeared. That people turned to look at her may have been not altogether a novelty: a girl who had learned
to appear unconscious of the Continental stare, the following gaze of the boulevards, the frank glasses of the
Costanza in Rome, was not ill equipped to face Main Street, Canaan, even as it was today.
Under the sycamores, before they started, they had not talked a great deal; there had been long silences:
almost all her questions concerning the period of his runaway absence; she appeared to know and to
understand everything which had happened since his return to the town. He had not, in his turn, reached the
point where he would begin to question her; he was too breathless in his consciousness of the marvellous
present hour. She had told him of the death of Roger Tabor, the year before. "Poor man," she said, gently, "he
lived to see `how the other fellows did it' at last, and everybody liked him. He was very happy over there."
After a little while she had said that it was growing close upon lunchtime; she must be going back.
"Thenthengoodbye," he replied, ruefully.
"Why?"
"I'm afraid you don't understand. It wouldn't do for you to be seen with me. Perhaps, though, you do
understand. Wasn't that why you asked me to meet you out here beyond the bridge?"
In answer she looked at him full and straight for three seconds, then threw back her head and closed her eyes
tight with laughter. Without a word she took the parasol from him, opened it herself, placed the smooth white
coral handle of it in his hand, and lightly took his arm. There was no further demur on the part of the young
man. He did not know where she was going; he did not ask.
Soon after Norbert turned to follow them, they came to the shady part of the street, where the town in
summer was like a grove. Detachments from the procession had already, here and there, turned in at the
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 61
Page No 64
various gates. Nobody, however, appeared to have gone indoors, except for fans, armed with which
immediately to return to rockers upon the shaded verandas. As Miss Tabor and Joe went by, the
rockingchairs stopped; the fans poised, motionless; and perspiring old gentlemen, wiping their necks,
paused in arrested attitudes.
Once Ariel smiled politely, not at Mr. Louden, and inclined her head twice, with the result that the latter, after
thinking for a time of how gracefully she did it and how pretty the top of her hat was, became gradually
conscious of a meaning in her action: that she had bowed to some one across the street. He lifted his hat,
about four minutes late, and discovered Mamie Pike and Eugene, upon the opposite pavement, walking home
from church together. Joe changed color.
There, just over the way, was she who had been, in his first youth, the fairy child, the little princess playing in
the palace yard, and always afterward his lady of dreams, his fair unreachable moon! And Joe, seeing her
today, changed color; that was all! He had passed Mamie in the street only a week before, and she had
seemed all that she had always seemed; today an incomprehensible and subtle change had befallen hera
change so mystifying to him that for a moment he almost doubted that she was Mamie Pike. It came to him
with a breath taking shock that her face lacked a certain vivacity of meaning; that its sweetness was perhaps
too placid; that there would have been a deeper goodness in it had there been any hint of daring. Astonishing
questions assailed him, startled him: could it be true that, after all, there might be some day too much of her?
Was her amber hair a little tooFLUFFY? Was something the matter with her dress? Everything she wore
had always seemed so beautiful. Where had the exquisiteness of it gone? For there was surely no
exquisiteness about it now! It was incredible that any one could so greatly alter in the few days elapsed since
he had seen her.
Strange matters! Mamie had never looked prettier.
At the sound of Ariel's voice he emerged from the profundities of his psychic enigma with a leap.
"She is lovelier than ever, isn't she?"
"Yes, indeed," he answered, blankly.
"Would you still risk" she began, smiling, but, apparently thinking better of it, changed her question:
"What is the name of your dog, Mr. Louden? You haven't told me."
"Oh, he's just a yellow dog," he evaded, unskilfully.
"YOUNG MAN!" she said, sharply.
"Well," he admitted, reluctantly, "I call him Speck for short."
"And what for long? I want to know his real name."
"It's mighty inappropriate, because we're fond of each other," said Joe, "but when I picked him up he was so
yellow, and so thin, and so creeping, and so scared that I christened him `Respectability.' "
She broke into light laughter, stopped short in the midst of it, and became grave. "Ah, you've grown bitter,"
she said, gently.
"No, no," he protested. "I told you I liked him."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 62
Page No 65
She did not answer.
They were now opposite the Pike Mansion, and to his surprise she turned, indicating the way by a touch upon
his sleeve, and crossed the street toward the gate, which Mamie and Eugene had entered. Mamie, after
exchanging a word with Eugene upon the steps, was already hurrying into the house.
Ariel paused at the gate, as if waiting for Joe to open it.
He cocked his head, his higher eyebrow rose, and the distorted smile appeared. "I don't believe we'd better
stop here," he said. "The last time I tried it I was expunged from the face of the universe."
"Don't you know?" she cried. "I'm staying here. Judge Pike has charge of all my property; he was the
administrator, or something." Then seeing him chopfallen and aghast, she went on: "Of course you don't
know! You don't know anything about me. You haven't even asked!"
"You're going to live HERE?" he gasped.
"Will you come to see me?" she laughed. "Will you come this afternoon?"
He grew white. "You know I can't," he said.
"You came here once. You risked a good deal then, just to see Mamie dance by a window. Don't you dare a
little for an old friend?"
"All right," he gulped. "I'll try."
Mr. Bantry had come down to the gate and was holding it open, his eyes fixed upon Ariel, within them a
rising glow. An impression came to Joe afterward that his stepbrother had looked very handsome.
"Possibly you remember me, Miss Tabor?" said Eugene, in a deep and impressive voice, lifting his hat. "We
were neighbors, I believe, in the old days."
She gave him her hand in a fashion somewhat mannerly, favoring him with a bright, negligent smile. "Oh,
quite," she answered, turning again to Joe as she entered the gate. "Then I shall expect you?"
"I'll try," said Joe. "I'll try."
He stumbled away; Respectability and he, together, interfering alarmingly with the comfort of Mr. Flitcroft,
who had stopped in the middle of the pavement to stare glassily at Ariel. Eugene accompanied the latter into
the house, and Joe, looking back, understood: Mamie had sent his step brother to bring Ariel inand to
keep him from following.
"This afternoon!" The thought took away his breath, and he became paler.
The Pike brougham rolled by him, and Sam Warden, from the box, favored his old friend upon the pavement
with a liberal display of the whites of his eyes. The Judge, evidently, had been detained after
serviceswithout doubt a meeting of the church officials. Mrs. Pike, blinking and frightened, sat at her
husband's side, agreeing feebly with the bullbass which rumbled out of the open window of the brougham:
"I want orthodox preaching in MY church, and, by God, madam, I'll have it! That fellow has got to go!" Joe
took off his hat and wiped his brow.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 63
Page No 66
XII. TO REMAIN ON THE FIELD OF BATTLE IS NOT ALWAYS A VICTORY
Mamie, waiting just inside the door as Ariel and Eugene entered, gave the visitor a pale greeting, and, a
moment later, hearing the wheels of the brougham crunch the gravel of the carriagedrive, hurried away,
down the broad hall, and disappeared. Ariel dropped her parasol upon a marbletopped table near the door,
and, removing her gloves, drifted into a room at the left, where a grand piano found shelter beneath crimson
plush. After a moment of contemplation, she pushed back the coverlet, and, seating herself upon the
plushcovered pianostool (to match), let her fingers run up and down the keyboard once and fall listlessly
in her lap, as she gazed with deep interest at three lifesized colored photographs (in carved gilt frames) upon
the wall she was facing: Judge Pike, Mamie, and Mrs. Pike with her rubies.
"Please don't stop playing, Miss Tabor," said a voice behind her. She had not observed that Eugene had
followed her into the room.
"Very well, if you like," she answered, looking up to smile absently at him. And she began to play a rakish
little air which, composed by some rattlebrain at a cafe table, had lately skipped out of the Moulin Rouge to
disport itself over Paris. She played it slowly, in the minor, with elfish pathos; while he leaned upon the
piano, his eyes fixed upon her fingers, which bore few rings, none, he observed with an unreasonable
pleasure, upon the third finger of the left hand.
"It's one of those simpler Grieg things, isn't it?" he said, sighing gently. "I care for Grieg."
"Would you mind its being Chaminade?" she returned, dropping her eyes to cloak the sin.
"Ah no; I recognize it now," replied Eugene. "He appeals to me even more than Grieg."
At this she glanced quickly up at him, but more quickly down again, and hastened the time emphatically,
swinging the little air into the major.
"Do you play the `Pilgrim's Chorus'?"
She shook her head.
"Vous name pas Wagner?" inquired Eugene, leaning toward her.
"Oh yes," she answered, bending her head far over, so that her face was concealed from him, except the chin,
which, he saw with a thrill of in explicable emotion, was trembling slightly. There were some small white
flowers upon her hat, and these shook too.
She stopped playing abruptly, rose from the stool and crossed the room to a large mahogany chair,
upholstered in red velvet and of hybrid construction, possessing both rockers and legs. She had moved in a
way which prevented him from seeing her face, but he was certain of her agitation, and strangely glad, while
curious, tremulous half thoughts, edged with prophecy, bubbled to the surface of his consciousness.
When she turned to him, he was surprised to see that she looked astonishingly happy, almost as if she had
been struggling with joy, instead of pain.
"This chair," she said, sinking into it, "makes me feel at home."
Naturally he could not understand.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 64
Page No 67
"Because," she explained, "I once thought I was going to live in it. It has been reupholstered, but I should
know it if I met in anywhere in the world!"
"How very odd!" exclaimed Eugene, staring.
"I settled here in pioneer days," she went on, tapping the arms lightly with her fingertips. "It was the last
dance I went to in Canaan."
"I fear the town was very provincial at that time," he returned, having completely forgotten the occasion she
mentioned, therefore wishing to shift the subject. "I fear you may still find it so. There is not much here that
one is in sympathy with, intellectuallyfew people really of the world."
"Few people, I suppose you mean," she said, softly, with a look that went deep enough into his eyes, "few
people who really understand one?"
Eugene had seated himself on the sill of an open window close by. "There has been," he answered, with the
ghost of a sigh, "no one."
She turned her head slightly away from him, apparently occupied with a loose thread in her sleeve. There
were no loose threads; it was an old habit of hers which she retained. "I suppose," she murmured, in a voice
as low as his had been, "that a man of your sort might find Canaan rather lonely and sad."
"It HAS been!" Whereupon she made him a laughing little bow.
"You are sure you complain of Canaan?"
"Yes!" he exclaimed. "You don't know what it is to live here"
"I think I do. I lived here seventeen years."
"Oh yes," he began to object, "as a child, but"
"Have you any recollection," she interrupted, "of the day before your brother ran away? Of coming home for
vacationI think it was your first year in collegeand intervening between your brother and me in a
snowfight?"
For a moment he was genuinely perplexed; then his face cleared. "Certainly," he said: "I found him bullying
you and gave him a good punishing for it."
"Is that all you remember?"
"Yes," he replied, honestly. "Wasn't that all?"
"Quite!" she smiled, her eyes half closed. "Except that I went home immediately afterward."
"Naturally," said Eugene. "My stepbrother wasn't very much chevalier sans peur et sans reproche! Ah, I
should like to polish up my French a little. Would you mind my asking you to read a bit with me, some little
thing of Daudet's if you care for him, in the original? An hour, now and then, perhaps"
Mamie appeared in the doorway and Eugene rose swiftly. "I have been trying to persuade Miss Tabor," he
explained, with something too much of laughter, "to play again. You heard that little thing of
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 65
Page No 68
Chaminade's"
Mamie did not appear to hear him; she entered breathlessly, and there was no color in her cheeks. "Ariel," she
exclaimed, "I don't want you to think I'm a talebearer"
"Oh, my dear!" Ariel said, with a gesture of deprecation.
"No," Miss Pike went on, all in one breath, "but I'm afraid you will think it, because papa knows and he
wants to see you."
"What is it that he knows?"
"That you were walking with Joseph Louden!" (This was as if she had said, "That you poisoned your
mother.") "I DIDN'T tell him, but when we saw you with him I was troubled, and asked Eugene what I'd
better do, because Eugene always knows what is best." (Mr. Bantry's expression, despite this tribute, was not
happy.) "And he advised me to tell mamma about it and leave it in her hands. But she always tells papa
everything"
"Certainly; that is understood," said Ariel, slowly, turning to smile at Eugene.
"And she told him this right away," Mamie finished.
"Why shouldn't she, if it is of the slightest interest to him?"
The daughter of the house exhibited signs of consternation. "He wants to see you," she repeated, falteringly.
"He's in the library."
Having thus discharged her errand, she hastened to the frontdoor, which had been left open, and out to the
steps, evidently with the intention of removing herself as soon and as far as possible from the vicinity of the
library.
Eugene, visibly perturbed, followed her to the doorway of the room, and paused.
"Do you know the way?" he inquired, with a note of solemnity.
"Where?" Ariel had not risen.
"To the library."
"Of course," she said, beaming upon him. "I was about to ask you if you wouldn't speak to the Judge for me.
This is such a comfortable old friend, this chair."
"Speak to him for you?" repeated the non plussed Eugene.
She nodded cheerfully. "If I may trouble you. Tell him, certainly, I shall be glad to see him."
He threw a piteous glance after Mamie, who was now, as he saw, through the open door, out upon the lawn
and beyond easy hailing distance. When he turned again to look at Ariel he discovered that she had shifted
the position of her chair slightly, and was gazing out of the window with every appearance of cheerful
meditation. She assumed so unmistakably that he had of course gone on her mission that, dismayed and his
soul quaking, he could find neither an alternative nor words to explain to this dazzling lady that not he nor
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 66
Page No 69
any other could bear such a message to Martin Pike.
Eugene went. There was nothing else to do; and he wished with every step that the distance to the portals of
the library might have been greater.
In whatever guise he delivered the summons, it was perfectly efficacious. A door slammed, a heavy and rapid
tread was heard in the hall, and Ariel, without otherwise moving, turned her head and offered a brilliant smile
of greeting.
"It was good of you," she said, as the doorway filled with red, imperial wrath, "to wish to have a little chat
with me. I'm anxious, of course, to go over my affairs with you, and last night, after my journey, I was too
tired. But now we might begin; not in detail, of course, just yet. That will do for later, when I've learned more
about business."
The great one had stopped on the threshold.
"Madam," he began, coldly, "when I say my library, I mean my"
"Oh yes," she interrupted, with amiable weariness. "I know. You mean you keep all the papers and books of
the estate in there, but I think we'd better put them off for a few days"
"I'm not talking about the estate!" he exclaimed. "What I want to talk to you about is being seen with Joseph
Louden!"
"Yes," she nodded, brightly. "That's along the line we must take up first."
"Yes, it is!" He hurled his bullbass at her. "You knew everything about him and his standing in this
community! I know you did, because Mrs. Pike told me you asked all about him from Mamie after you came
last night, and, see here, don't you"
"Oh, but I knew before that," she laughed. "I had a correspondent in Canaan, one who has always taken a
great interest in Mr. Louden. I asked Miss Pike only to get her own point of view."
"I want to tell you, madam," he shouted, coming toward her, "that no member of my household"
"That's another point we must take up today. I'm glad you remind me of it," she said, thoughtfully, yet with
so magically compelling an intonation that he stopped his shouting in the middle of a word; stopped with an
apoplectic splutter. "We must arrange to put the old house in order at once."
"We'll arrange nothing of the sort," he responded, after a moment of angry silence. "You're going to stay right
here."
"Ah, I know your hospitality," she bowed, graciously. "But of course I must not tax it too far. And about Mr.
Louden? As I said, I want to speak to you about him."
"Yes," he intervened, harshly. "So do I, and I'm going to do it quick! You'll find"
Again she mysteriously baffled him. "He's a dear old friend of mine, you know, and I have made up my mind
that we both need his help, you and I."
"What!"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 67
Page No 70
"Yes," she continued, calmly, "in a business way I mean. I know you have great interests in a hundred
directions, all more important than mine; it isn't fair that you should bear the whole burden of my affairs, and
I think it will be best to retain Mr. Louden as my man of business. He could take all the cares of the estate off
your shoulders."
Martin Pike spoke no word, but he looked at her strangely; and she watched him with sudden keenness,
leaning forward in her chair, her gaze alert but quiet, fixed on the dilating pupils of his eyes. He seemed to
become dizzy, and the choleric scarlet which had overspread his broad face and big neck faded splotchily.
Still keeping her eyes upon him, she went on: "I haven't asked him yet, and so I don't know whether or not
he'll consent, but I think it possible that he may come to see me this afternoon, and if he does we can propose
it to him together and go over things a little."
Judge Pike recovered his voice. "He'll get a warm welcome," he promised, huskily, "if he sets foot on my
premises!"
"You mean you prefer I shouldn't receive him here?" She nodded pleasantly. "Then certainly I shall not. Such
things are much better for offices; you are quite right."
"You'll not see him at all!"
"Ah, Judge Pike," she lifted her hand with gentle deprecation, "don't you understand that we can't quite
arrange that? You see, Mr. Louden is even an older friend of mine than you are, and so I must trust his advice
about such things more than yours. Of course, if he too should think it better for me not to see him"
The Judge advanced toward her. "I'm tired of this," he began, in a loud voice. "I'm"
She moved as if to rise, but he had come very close, leaning above her, one arm outstretched and at the end
of it a heavy forefinger which he was shaking at her, so that it was difficult to get out of her chair without
pushing him awaya feat apparently impossible. Ariel Tabor, in rising, placed her hand upon his
outstretched arm, quite as if he had offered it to assist her; he fell back a step in complete astonishment; she
rose quickly, and released his arm.
"Thank you," she said, beamingly. "It's quite all my fault that you're tired. I've been thoughtless to keep you
so long, and you have been standing, too!" She swept lightly and quickly to the door, where she paused,
gathering her skirts. "I shall not detain you another instant! And if Mr. Louden comes, this afternoon, I'll
remember. I'll not let him come in, of course. It will be perhaps pleasanter to talk over my proposition as we
walk!"
There was a very faint, spicy odor like wild roses and cinnamon left in the room where Martin Pike stood
alone, staring whitely at the open doorway,
XIII. THE WATCHER AND THE WARDEN
There was a custom of Canaan, timeworn and seldom honored in the breach, which put Ariel, that
afternoon, in easy possession of a coign of vantage commanding the front gate. The heavy Sunday dinner was
finished in silence (on the part of Judge Pike, deafening) about three o'clock, and, soon after, Mamie tossed a
number of cushions out upon the stoop between the castiron dogs,Sam Warden having previously
covered the steps with a rug and placed several garden chairs near by on the grass. These simple preparations
concluded, Eugene sprawled comfortably upon the rug, and Mamie seated herself near him, while Ariel
wandered with apparent aimlessness about the lawn, followed by the gaze of Mr. Bantry, until Miss Pike
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 68
Page No 71
begged her, a little petulantly, to join them.
She came, looking about her dreamily, and touching to her lips, now and then, with an absent air, a clover
blossom she had found in the longer grass against the fence. She stopped to pat the neck of one of the
castiron deer, and with grave eyes proffered the clovertop first for inspection, then as food. There were
those in the world who, seeing her, might have wondered that the deer did not play Galatea and come to life.
"No?" she said, aloud, to the steadfast head. "You won't? What a mistake to be made of cast iron!" She
smiled and nodded to a clump of lilac bushes near a cedartree, and to nothing elseso far as Eugene and
Mamie could see,then walked thoughtfully to the steps.
"Who in the world were you speaking to?" asked Mamie, curiously.
"That deer."
"But you bowed to some one."
"Oh, that," Ariel lifted her eyebrows,"that was your father. Didn't you see him?"
"No."
"I believe you can't from here, after all," said Ariel, slowly. "He is sitting upon a rustic bench between the
bushes and the cedartree, quite near the gate. No, you couldn't see him from here; you'd have to go as far as
the deer, at least, and even then you might not notice him, unless you looked for him. He has a booka
Bible, I think but I don't think he is reading."
"He usually takes a nap on Sunday afternoons," said Mamie.
"I don't think he will, today." Ariel looked at Eugene, who avoided her clear gaze. "He has the air of having
settled himself to stay for a long time, perhaps until evening."
She had put on her hat after dinner, and Mamie now inquired if she would not prefer to remove it, offering to
carry it indoors for her, to Ariel's room, to insure its safety. "You look so sort of temporary, wearing it," she
urged, "as if you were only here for a little while. It's the loveliest hat I ever saw, and so fragile, too, but I'll
take care"
Ariel laughed, leaned over, and touched the other's hand lightly. "It isn't that, dear."
"What is it, then?" Mamie beamed out into a joyful smile. She had felt sure that she could not understand
Ariel; was, indeed, afraid of her; and she found herself astonishingly pleased to be called "dear," and
delighted with the little familiarity of the handtap. Her feeling toward the visitor (who was, so her father had
announced, to become a permanent member of the household) had been, until now, undefined. She had been
on her guard, watching for some sign of conscious "superiority" in this lady who had been so long overseas,
not knowing what to make of her; though thrown, by the contents of her trunks, into a wistfulness which
would have had something of rapture in it had she been sure that she was going to like Ariel. She had gone to
the latter's room before church, and had perceived uneasily that it had become, even by the process of
unpacking, the prettiest room she had ever seen. Mrs. Warden, wife of Sam, and handmaiden of the mansion,
was assisting, alternately faint and vociferous with marvelling. Mamie feared that Ariel might be a little
overpowering.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 69
Page No 72
With the word "dear" (that is, of course, with the way it was spoken), and with the touch upon the hand, it
was all suddenly settled; she would not understand Ariel alwaysthat was clearbut they would like each
other.
"I am wearing my hat," answered Ariel, "because at any moment I may decide to go for a long walk!"
"Oh, I hope not," said Mamie. "There are sure to be people: a few still come, even though I'm an engaged
girl. I expect that's just to console me, though," she added, smiling over this worn quip of the betrothed, and
shaking her head at Eugene, who grew red and coughed. "There'll be plenty today, but they won't be here to
see me. It's you, Ariel, and they'd be terribly disappointed if you weren't here. I shouldn't wonder if the whole
town came; it's curious enough about you!"
Canaan (at least that part of it which Mamie meant when she said "the whole town") already offered
testimony to her truthfulness. Two gentlemen, aged nine and eleven, and clad in white "sailor suits," were at
that moment grooving their cheeks between the round pickets of the gate. They had come from the house
across the street, evidently stimulated by the conversation at their own recent dinnertable (they wore a few
deposits such as are left by chocolatecake), and the motive of their conduct became obvious when, upon
being joined by a person from next door (a starched and frilled person of the opposite sex but sympathetic
age), one of them waggled a forefinger through the gate at Ariel, and a voice was heard in explanation:
"THAT'S HER."
There was a rustle in the lilacbushes near the cedartree; the three small heads turned simultaneously in that
direction; something terrific was evidently seen, and with a horrified "OOOH!" the trio skedaddled headlong.
They were but the gay vanguard of the life which the street, quite dead through the Sunday dinnerhour,
presently took on. Young couples with their progeny began to appear, returning from the weekly reunion
Sunday dinner with relatives; young people meditative (until they reached the Pike Mansion), the wives
fanning themselves or shooing the totsabletowalk ahead of them, while the husbands, wearing long coats,
satin ties, and showing dust upon their blazing shoes, invariably pushed the perambulators. Most of these
passersby exchanged greetings with Mamie and Eugene, and all of them looked hard at Ariel as long as it
was possible.
And now the young men of the town, laboriously arranged as to apparel, began to appear on the street in
small squads, making their Sunday rounds; the youngest working in phalanxes of threes and fours, those
somewhat older inclining to move in pairs; the eldest, such as were now beginning to be considered
middleaged beaux, or (by the extremely youthful) "old bachelors," evidently considered it advantageous to
travel alone. Of all these, there were few who did not, before evening fell, turn in at the gate of the Pike
Mansion. Consciously, shyly or confidently, according to the condition of their souls, they made their way
between the castiron deer to be presented to the visitor.
Ariel sat at the top of the steps, and, looking amiably over their heads, talked with such as could get near her.
There were many who could not, and Mamie, occupying the bench below, was surrounded by the overflow.
The difficulty of reaching and maintaining a position near Miss Tabor was increased by the attitude and
behavior of Mr. Flitcroft, who that day cooled the feeling of friendship which several of his
fellowtownsmen had hitherto entertained for him. He had been the first to arrive, coming alone, though that
was not his custom, and he established himself at Ariel's right, upon the step just below her, so disposing the
great body and the ponderous arms and legs the gods had given him, that no one could mount above him to
sit beside her, or approach her from that direction within conversational distance. Once established, he was
not to be dislodged, and the only satisfaction for those in this manner debarred from the society of the
beautiful stranger was obtained when they were presented to her and when they took their departure. On these
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 70
Page No 73
occasions it was necessary by custom for them to shake her hand, a ceremony they accomplished by leaning
across Mr. Flitcroft, which was a long way to lean, and the fat back and shoulders were sore that night
because of what had been surreptitiously done to them by revengeful elbows and knees.
Norbert, not ordinarily talkative, had nothing to say; he seemed to find sufficient occupation in keeping the
place he had gained; and from this close vantage he fastened his small eyes immovably upon Ariel's profile.
Eugene, also apparently determined not to move, sat throughout the afternoon at her left, but as he was thin,
others, who came and went, were able to approach upon that side and hold speech with her.
She was a stranger to these young people, most of whom had grown up together in a nickname intimacy. Few
of them had more than a very imperfect recollection of her as she was before Roger Tabor and she had
departed out of Canaan. She had lived her girlhood only upon their borderland, with no intimates save her
grandfather and Joe; and she returned to her native town "a revelation and a dream," as young Mr. Bradbury
told his incredulous grandmother that night.
The conversation of the gallants consisted, for the greater part, of witticisms at one another's expense, which,
though evoked for Ariel's benefit (all eyes furtively reverting to her as each shaft was loosed), she found
more or less enigmatical. The young men, however, laughed at each other loudly, and seemed content if now
and then she smiled. "You must be frightfully ennuied with all this," Eugene said to her. "You see how
provincial we still are."
She did not answer; she had not heard him. The shadows were stretching themselves over the grass, long and
attenuated; the sunlight upon the trees and houses was like a thin, rosy pigment; black birds were calling each
other home to beech and elm; and Ariel's eyes were fixed upon the western distance of the street where
golddust was beginning to quiver in the air. She did not hear Eugene, but she started, a moment later, when
the name "Joe Louden" was pronounced by a young man, the poetic Bradbury, on the step below Eugene.
Some one immediately said "'SH!" But she leaned over and addressed Mr. Bradbury, who, shut out, not only
from the group about her, but from the other centring upon Miss Pike, as well, was holding a private
conversation with a friend in like misfortune.
"What were you saying of Mr. Louden?" she asked, smiling down upon the young man. (It was this smile
which inspired his description of her as "a revelation and a dream.")
"Oh, nothing particular," was his embarrassed reply. "I only mentioned I'd heard there was some talk among
the" He paused awkwardly, remembering that Ariel had walked with Joseph Louden in the face of Canaan
that very day. "That is, I mean to say, there's some talk of his running for Mayor."
"WHAT?"
There was a general exclamation, followed by an uncomfortable moment or two of silence. No one present
was unaware of that noon walk, though there was prevalent a pleasing notion that it would not happen again,
founded on the idea that Ariel, having only arrived the previous evening, had probably met Joe on the street
by accident, and, remembering him as a playmate of her childhood and uninformed as to his reputation, had,
naturally enough, permitted him to walk home with her.
Mr. Flitcroft broke the silence, rushing into words with a derisive laugh: "Yes, he's `talked of' for Mayorby
the saloon people and the niggers! I expect the Beaver Beach crowd would be for him, and if tramps could
vote he might"
"What is Beaver Beach?" asked Ariel, not turning.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 71
Page No 74
"What is Beaver Beach?" he repeated, and cast his eyes to the sky, shaking his head awesomely. "It's a
Place," he said, with abysmal solemnity, "a Place I shouldn't have mentioned in your presence, Miss
Tabor."
"What has it to do with Mr. Louden?"
The predestined Norbert conceived the present to be a heavensent opportunity to enlighten her concerning
Joe's character, since the Pikes appeared to have been derelict in the performance of this kindness.
"He goes there!" he proceeded heavily. "He lived there for a while when he first came back from running
away, and he's a friend of Mike Sheehan's that runs it; he's a friend of all the riff raff that hang around
there."
"How do you know he goes there?"
"Why, it was in the paper the day after he came back!" He appealed for corroboration. "Wasn't it, Eugene?"
"No, no!" she persisted. "Newspapers are sometimes mistaken, aren't they?" Laughing a little, she swept
across the bulbous face beside her a swift regard that was like a searchlight. "How do you KNOW, Mr.
Flitcroft," she went on very rapidly, raising her voice,"how do you KNOW that Mr. Louden is familiar
with this place? The newspapers may have been falsely informed; you must admit that? Then how do you
KNOW? Have you ever MET any one who has seen him there?"
"I've seen him there myself!" The words skipped out of Norbert's mouth like so many little devils, the instant
he opened it. She had spoken so quickly and with such vehemence, looking him full in the eye, that he had
forgotten everything in the world except making the point to which her insistence had led him.
Mamie looked horrified; there was a sound of smothered laughter, and Norbert, overwhelmed by the
treachery of his own mouth, sat gasping.
"It can't be such a terrific place, then, after all," said Ariel, gently, and turning to Eugene, "Have you ever
been there, Mr. Bantry?" she asked.
He changed color, but answered with enough glibness: "No."
Several of the young men rose; the wretched Flitcroft, however, evading Mamie's eyein which there was a
distinct hint,sat where he was until all of them, except Eugene, had taken a reluctant departure, one group
after another, leaving in the order of their arrival.
The rosy pigment which had colored the trees faded; the golddust of the western distance danced itself pale
and departed; dusk stalked into the town from the east; and still the watcher upon the steps and the warden of
the gate (he of the lilac bushes and the Bible) held their places and waited waited, alas! in vain. . . . Ah!
Joe, is THIS the mettle of your daring? Did you not say you would "try"? Was your courage so frail a vessel
that it could not carry you even to the gate yonder? Surely you knew that if you had striven so far, there you
would have been met! Perhaps you foresaw that not one, but two, would meet you at the gate, both the
warden and the watcher. What of that? What of that, O faint heart? What was there to fear? Listen! The gate
clicks. Ah, have you come at last?
Ariel started to her feet, but the bent figure, coming up the walk in the darkness, was that of Eskew Arp. He
bowed gloomily to Mamie, and in response to her inquiry if he wished to see her father, answered no; he had
come to talk with the granddaughter of his old friend Roger Tabor.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 72
Page No 75
"Mr. Arp!" called Ariel. "I am so very glad!" She ran down to him and gave him her hand. "We'll sit here on
the bench, sha'n't we?"
Mamie had risen, and skirting Norbert frostily, touched Eugene upon the shoulder as she went up the steps.
He understood that he was to follow her indoors, and, after a deep look at the bench where Ariel had seated
herself beside Mr. Arp, he obeyed. Norbert was left a lonely ruin between the cold, twin dogs. He had
wrought desolation this afternoon, and that sweet verdure, his good name, so long in the planting, so carefully
tended, was now a dreary waste; yet he contemplated this not so much as his present aspect of splendid
isolation. Frozen by the daughter of the house, forgotten by the visitor, whose conversation with Mr. Arp was
carried on in tones so low that he could not understand it, the fat one, though heart breakingly loath to take
himself away, began to comprehend that his hour had struck. He rose, descended the steps to the bench, and
seated himself unexpectedly upon the cement walk at Ariel's feet. "Leg's gone to sleep," he explained, in
response to her startled exclamation; but, like a great soul, ignoring the accident of his position as well as the
presence of Mr. Arp, he immediately proceeded: "Will you go riding with me tomorrow afternoon?"
"Aren't you very goodnatured, Mr. Flitcroft?" she asked, with an odd intonation.
"I'm imposed on, often enough," he replied, rubbing his leg, "by people who think I am! Why?"
"It is only that your sitting so abruptly upon the ground reminded me of something that happened long ago,
before I left Canaan, the last time I met you."
"I don't think I knew you before you went away. You haven't said if you'll go riding with me tomorrow.
Please"
"Get up," interrupted Mr. Arp, acidly. "Somebody 'll fall over you if you stay there."
Such a catastrophe in truth loomed imminent. Judge Pike was rapidly approaching on his way to the house,
Bible in handfar better in hand than was his temper, for it is an enraging thing to wait five hours in ambush
for a man who does not come. In the darkness a desecration occurred, and Norbert perfected to the last detail
whatever had been left incomplete of his own destruction. He began lumberingly to rise, talking at the same
time, urging upon Ariel the charms of the roadside; wild flowers were in blossom, he said, recounting the
benefits she might derive through acceptance of his invitation; and having, thus busily, risen to his knees,
became aware that some one was passing near him. This some one Mr. Flitcroft, absorbed in artful
persuasions, may have been betrayed by the darkness to mistake for Eugene. Reaching out for assistance, he
mechanically seized upon the skirts of a coat, which he put to the uses of a rope, coming up handoverhand
with such noble weight and energy that he brought himself to his feet and the owner of the coat to the ground
simultaneously. The latter, hideously astonished, went down with an objurgation so outrageous in venom that
Mr. Arp jumped with the shock. Judge Pike got to his feet quickly, but not so quickly as the piteous Flitcroft
betook himself into the deep shadows of the street. Only a word, hoarse and horrorstricken, was left
quivering on the night breeze by this accursed, whom the gods, intent upon his ruin, had early in the day, at
his first sight of Ariel, in good truth, made mad: "MURDER!"
"Can I help you brush off, Judge?" asked Eskew, rising painfully.
Either Martin Pike was beyond words, or the courtesy proposed by the feeble old fellow (for Eskew was now
very far along in years, and looked his age) emphasized too bitterly the indignity which had been put upon
him: whatever the case, he went his way indoors, leaving the cynic's offer unacknowledged. Eskew sank
back upon the bench, with the little rusty sounds, suggestions of creaks and sighs, which accompany the
movement of antiques. "I've always thought," he said, "that the Judge had spells when he was hard of
hearing."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 73
Page No 76
Oblongs of light abruptly dropped from the windows confronting them, one, falling across the bench,
appropriately touching with lemon the acrid, withered face and trembling hands of the veteran. "You are
younger than you were nine years ago, Mr. Arp," said Ariel, gayly. "I caught a glimpse of you upon the
street, today, and I thought so then. Now I see that I was right."
"MeYOUNGER!" he groaned. "No, ma'am! I'm mighty near through with this fool worldand I'd be glad
of it, if I didn't expect that if there IS another one afterwards, it would be jest as ornery!"
She laughed, leaning forward, resting her elbows on her knee, and her chin in her hand, so that the shadow of
her hat shielded her eyes from the light. "I thought you looked surprised when you saw me to day."
"I reckon I did!" he exclaimed. "Who wouldn't of been?"
"Why?"
"Why?" he repeated, confounded by her simplicity. "Why?"
"Yes," she laughed. "That's what I'm anxious to know."
"Wasn't the whole town the same way?" he demanded. "Did you meet anybody that didn't look surprised?"
"But why should they?"
"Good Lord Admighty!" he broke out. "Ain't you got any lookin'glasses?"
"I think almost all I have are still in the customs warehouse."
"Then use Mamie Pike's," responded the old man. "The town never dreamed you were goin' to turn out pretty
at all, let alone the WAY you've turned out pretty! The Tocsin had a good deal about your looks and so forth
in it once, in a letter from Paris, but the folks that remembered you kind of set that down to the way papers
talk about anybody with money, and nobody was prepared for it when they saw you. You don't need to drop
no curtseys to ME." He set his mouth grimly, in response to the bow she made him. "_I_ think female beauty
is like all other human furbelows, and as holler as heaven will be if only the good people are let in! But yet I
did stop to look at you when you went past me today, and I kept on lookin', long as you were in sight. I
reckon I always will, when I git the chance, tooonly shows what human nature IS! But that wasn't all that
folks were starin' at today. It was your walkin' with Joe Louden that really finished 'em, and I can say it
upset me more than anything I've seen for a good many years."
"Upset you, Mr. Arp?" she cried. "I don't quite see."
The old man shook his head deploringly. "After what I'd written you about that boy"
"Ah," she said, softly, touching his sleeve with her fingers, "I haven't thanked you for that."
"You needn't," he returned, sharply. "It was a pleasure. Do you remember how easy and quick I promised
you?"
"I remember that you were very kind."
"Kind!" He gave forth an acid and chilling laugh. "It was about two months after Louden ran away, and
before you and Roger left Canaan, and you asked me to promise to write to you whenever word of that
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 74
Page No 77
outcast came"
"I didn't put it so, Mr. Arp."
"No, but you'd ought of! You asked me to write you whatever news of him should come, and if he came back
to tell you how and when and all about it. And I did it, and kept you sharp on his record ever since he landed
here again. Do you know why I've done it? Do you know why I promised so quick and easy I WOULD do
it?"
"Out of the kindness of your heart, I think."
The acid laugh was repeated. "NO, ma 'am! You couldn't of guessed colder. I promised, and I kept my
promise, because I knew there would never be anything good to tell! AND THERE NEVER WAS!"
"Nothing at all?" she insisted, gravely.
"Never! I leave it to you if I've written one good word of him."
"You've written of the treatment he has received here," she began, "and I've been able to see what he has
borneand bears!"
"But have I written one word to show that he didn't deserve it all? Haven't I told you everything, of his
associates, his"
"Indeed you have!"
"Then do you wonder that I was more surprised than most when I saw you walking with him to day?
Because I knew you did it in cold blood and knowledge aforethought! Other folks thought it was because you
hadn't been here long enough to hear his reputation, but I KNEW!"
"Tell me," she said, "if you were disappointed when you saw me with him."
"Yes," he snapped. "I was!"
"I thought so. I saw the consternation in your face! You APPROVED, didn't you?"
"I don't know what you're talking about!"
"Yes, you do! I know it bothers you to have me read you between the lines, but for this once you must let me.
You are so consistent that you are never disappointed when things turn out badly, or people are wicked or
foolish, are you?"
"No, certainly not. I expect it."
"And you were disappointed in me today. Therefore, it must be that I was doing something you knew was
right and good. You see?" She leaned a little closer to him, smiling angelically. "Ah, Mr. Arp," she cried, "I
know your secret: you ADMIRE me!"
He rose, confused and incoherent, as full of denial as a detected pickpocket. "I DON'T! Me ADMIRE?
WHAT? It's an ornery world," he protested. "I don't admire any human that ever lived!"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 75
Page No 78
"Yes, you do," she persisted. "I've just proved it! But that is the least of your secret; the great thing is this:
YOU ADMIRE MR. LOUDEN!"
"I never heard such nonsense," he continued to protest, at the same time moving down the walk toward the
gate, leaning heavily on his stick. "Nothin' of the kind. There ain't any LOGIC to that kind of an argument,
nor no REASON!"
"You see, I understand you," she called after him. "I'm sorry you go away in the bitterness of being found
out."
"Found out!" His stick ceased for a moment to tap the cement. "Pooh!" he ejaculated, uneasily. There was a
pause, followed by a malevolent chuckle. "At any rate," he said, with joy in the afterthought, "you'll never go
walkin' with him AGAIN!"
He waited for the answer, which came, after a time, sadly. "Perhaps you are right. Perhaps I shall not."
"Ha, I thought so! Goodnight."
"Goodnight, Mr. Arp."
She turned toward the lighted house. Through the windows nearest her she could see Mamie, seated in the
familiar chair, following with happy and tender eyes the figure of Eugene, who was pacing up and down the
room. The town was deadly quiet: Ariel could hear the sound of footsteps perhaps a block away. She went to
the gate and gazed a long time into the empty street, watching the yellow grains of light, sieved through the
maples from the arc lights on the corner, moving to and fro in the deep shadow as the lamp swung slightly in
the night air. Somewhere, not far away, the peace was broken by the screams of a "parlor organ," which
honked and wailed in pious agonies (the intention was hymnal), interminably protracting each spasm.
Presently a woman's voice outdid the organ, a voice which made vivid the picture of the woman who owned
it, and the ploughed forehead of her, above the noseglasses, when the "gracenotes" were proudly given
birth. "Rescue the Perishing" was the startlingly appropriate selection, rendered with inconceivable lingering
upon each syllable: "Roos cyoo the Poorooshoong!" At unexpected intervals two male voices, evidently
belonging to men who had contracted the habit of holding tin in their mouths, joined the lady in a thorough
search for the Lost Chord.
That was the last of silence in Canaan for an hour or so. The organ was merely inaugural: across the street a
piano sounded; firm, emphatic, determined, vocal competition with the instrument here also; "Rock of Ages"
the incentive. Another piano presently followed suit, in a neighboring house: "Precious Jewels." More distant,
a second organ was heard; other pianos, other organs, took up other themes; and as a wakeful puppy's barking
will go over a village at night, stirring first the nearer dogs to give voice, these in turn stimulating those
farther away to join, one passing the excitement on to another, until hounds in farm yards far beyond the
town contribute to the long distance conversation, even so did "Rescue the Perishing" enliven the greater
part of Canaan.
It was this that made Ariel realize a thing of which hitherto she had not been able to convince herself: that she
was actually once more in the town where she had spent her longago girlhood; now grown to seem the
girlhood of some other person. It was true: her foot was on her native heath and her name was Ariel
Taborthe very name of the girl who had shared the town's disapproval with Joe Louden! "Rescue the
Perishing" brought it all back to her; and she listened to these sharply familiar rites of the Canaanite Sabbath
evening with a shiver of pain.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 76
Page No 79
She turned from the gate to go into the house, heard Eugene's voice at the door, and paused. He was saying
goodnight to Mamie.
"And please say `au revoir' to Miss Tabor for me," he added, peering out under his hand. "I don't know where
she can have gone."
"Probably she came in and went to her room," said Mamie.
"Don't forget to tell her `au revoir.' "
"I won't, dear. Goodnight. "
"Goodnight." She lifted her face and he kissed her perfunctorily. Then he came down the steps and went
slowly toward the gate, looking about him into the darkness as if searching for something; but Ariel had fled
away from the path of light that led from the open door.
She skimmed noiselessly across the lawn and paused at the side of the house, leaning against the veranda,
where, on a night long past, a boy had hid and a girl had wept. A small creaking sound fell upon her ear, and
she made out an ungainly figure approaching, wheeling something of curious shape.
"Is that you, Sam?" she said.
Mr. Warden stopped, close by. "Yes'm," he replied. "I'm agittin' out de hose to lay de dus' yonnah." He
stretched an arm along the cross bar of the reel, relaxing himself, apparently, for conversation. "Y'all done
change consid'able, Miss Airil," he continued, with the directness of one sure of privilege.
"You think so, Sam?"
"Yes'm. Ev'ybody think so, _I_ reckon. Be'n a tai'ble lot o' talkum 'bout you today. Dun'no' how all dem oth'
young ladies goin' take it!" He laughed with immoderate delight, yet, as to the volume of mere sound,
discreetly, with an eye to open windows. "You got 'em all beat, Miss Airil! Dey ain' be'n no one 'roun' dis
town evah got in a thousum mile o' you! Fer looks, an' de way you walk an' ca'y yo'self; an' as fer de
clo'esname o' de good lan', honey, dey ain' nevah SEE style befo'! My ole woman say you got mo' fixin's
in a minute dan de whole res' of 'em got in a yeah. She say when she helpin' you onpack she must 'a' see mo'n
a hunerd paihs o' slippahs alone! An' de good Man knows I 'membuh w'en you runnin' roun' backyods an' up
de alley rompin' 'ith Joe Louden, same you's a boy!"
"Do you ever see Mr. Louden, nowadays?" she asked.
His laugh was repeated with the same discreet violence. "Ain' I seen him dis ve'y day, fur up de street at de
gate yonnah, stan'in' 'ith you, w'en I drivin' de Judge?"
"Youyou didn't happen to see him anywhere thisthis afternoon?"
"No'm, I ain' SEE him." Sam's laughter vanished and his lowered voice became serious. "I ain' SEE him, but I
hearn about him."
"What did you hear?"
"Dey be 'n consid'able stir on de aidge o ' town, I reckon," he answered, gravely, "an' dey be'n havin' some
trouble out at de Beach"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 77
Page No 80
"Beaver Beach, do you mean?"
"Yes'm. Dey be'n some shootin' goin' on out dat way."
She sprang forward and caught at his arm without speaking.
"Joe Louden all right," he said, reassuringly. "Ain' nuffum happen to him! Nigh as I kin mek out f'm de
TALK, dat Happy Fear gone on de ramPAGE ag'in, an' dey hatta sent fer Mist' Louden to come in a hurry."
XIV. WHITE ROSES IN A LAWOFFICE
As upon a world canopied with storm, hung with mourning purple and habited in black, did Mr. Flitcroft turn
his morning face at eight o'clock antemeridian Monday, as he hied himself to his daily duty at the
Washington National Bank. Yet more than the merely funereal gloomed out from the hillocky area of his
countenance. Was there not, i'faith, a glow, a Vesuvian shimmer, beneath the murk of that darkling eye? Was
here one, think you, to turn the other cheek? Little has he learned of Norbert Flitcroft who conceives that this
fiery spirit was easily to be quenched! Look upon the jowl of him, and let him who dares maintain that
peopleeven the very Pikes themselveswere to grind beneath their brougham wheels a prostrate Norbert
and ride on scatheless! In this his own metaphor is nearly touched "I guess not! They don't run over ME!
Martin Pike better look out how he tries it!"
So Mother Nature at her kindly tasks, good Norbert, uses for her unguent our own perfect inconsistency: and
often when we are stabbed deep in the breast she distracts us by thin scratches in other parts, that in the itch
of these we may forget the greater hurt till it be healed. Thus, the remembrance of last night, when you
undisguisedly ran from the wrath of a Pike, with a pretty girl looking on (to say nothing of the acrid Arp, who
will fling the legend on a thousand winds), might well agonize you now, as, in less hasty moments and at a
safe distance, you brood upon the piteous figure you cut. On the contrary, behold: you see no blood
crimsoning the edges of the horrid gash in your panoply of selfesteem: you but smart and scratch the
scratches, forgetting your wound in the hot itch for vengeance. It is an itch which will last (for in such matters
your temper shall be steadfast), and let the great Goliath in the mean time beware of you! You ran, last night.
You ranof course you ran. Why not? You ran to fight another day!
A bank clerk sometimes has opportunities.
The stricken fat one could not understand how it came about that he had blurted out the damning confession
that he had visited Beaver Beach. When he tried to solve the puzzle, his mind refused the strain, became
foggy and the terrors of his position acute. Was he, like Joe Louden, to endure the ban of Canaan, and like
him stand excommunicate beyond the pale because of Martin Pike's displeasure? For Norbert saw with
perfect clearness today what the Judge had done for Joe. Now that he stood in danger of a fate identical, this
came home to him. How many others, he wondered, would do as Mamie had done and write notes such as he
had received by the hand of Sam Warden, late last night?
"DEAR SIR." (This from Mamie, who, in the Canaanitish way, had been wont to address him as "Norb"!)
"My father wishes me to state that after your remark yesterday afternoon on the steps which was overheard
by my mother who happened to be standing in the hall behind you and your BEHAVIOR to himself later
onhe considers it impossible to allow you to call any more or to speak to any member of his household.
"Yours respectfully, "MAMIE PIKE."
Erasures and restorations bore witness to a considerable doubt in Mamie's mind concerning "Yours
respectfully," but she had finally let it stand, evidently convinced that the plain signature, without preface,
savored of an intimacy denied by the context.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 78
Page No 81
"`DEAR SIR'!" repeated Norbert, between set teeth. "`IMPOSSIBLE TO ALLOW YOU TO CALL any
more'!" These and other terms of his dismissal recurred to him during the morning, and ever and anon he
looked up from his desk, his lips moving to the tune of those horrid phrases, and stared out at the street.
Basilisk glaring this, with no Christian softness in it, not even when it fell upon his own grandfather, sitting
among the sages within easy eyeshot from the big window at Norbert's elbow. However, Colonel Flitcroft
was not disturbed by the gaze of his descendant, being, in fact, quite unaware of it. The aged men were
having a busy morning.
The conclave was not what it had been. [See Arp and all his works.] There had come, as the years went by, a
few recruits; but faces were missing: the two Tabors had gone, and Uncle Joe Davey could no longer lay
claim to the patriarchship; he had laid it down with a halfsigh and gone his way. Eskew himself was now
the oldest of the conscript fathers, the Colonel and Squire Buckalew pressing him closely, with Peter
Bradbury no great time behind.
Today they did not plant their feet upon the brass rail inside the hotel windows, but courted the genial
weather outdoors, and, as their summer custom was, tilted back their chairs in the shade of the western wall
of the building.
"And who could of dreamed," Mr. Bradbury was saying, with a sideglance of expectancy at Eskew, "that
Jonas Tabor would ever turn out to have a niece like that!"
Mr. Arp ceased to fan himself with his wide straw hat and said grimly:
"I don't see as Jonas HAS `turned out'not in particular! If he's turned at all, lately, I reckon it's in his grave,
and I'll bet he HAS if he had any way of hearin' how much she must of spent for clothes!"
"I believe," Squire Buckalew began, "that young folks' memories are short."
"They're lucky!" interjected Eskew. "The shorter your memory the less meanness you know."
"I meant young folks don't remember as well as older people do," continued the Squire. "I don't see what's so
remarkable in her comin' back and walkin' upstreet with Joe Louden. She used to go kitin' round with him
all the time, before she left here. And yet everybody talks as if they never HEARD of sech a thing!"
"It seems to me," said Colonel Flitcroft, hesitatingly, "that she did right. I know it sounds kind of a queer
thing to say, and I stirred up a good deal of opposition at home, yesterday evening, by sort of mentioning
something of the kind. Nobody seemed to agree with me, except Norbert, and he didn't SAY much, but"
He was interrupted by an uncontrollable cackle which issued from the mouth of Mr. Arp. The Colonel turned
upon him with a frown, inquiring the cause of his mirth.
"It put me in mind," Mr. Arp began promptly, "of something that happened last night."
"What was it?"
Eskew's mouth was open to tell, but he remembered, just in time, that the grandfather of Norbert was not the
audience properly to be selected for this recital, choked a halfborn word, coughed loudly, realizing that he
must withhold the story of the felling of Martin Pike until the Colonel had taken his departure, and replied:
"Nothin' to speak of. Go on with your argument."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 79
Page No 82
"I've finished," said the Colonel. "I only wanted to say that it seems to me a good action for a young lady like
that to come back here and stick to her old friend and playmate."
"STICK to him!" echoed Mr. Arp. "She walked up Main Street with him yesterday. Do you call that stickin'
to him? She's been away a good while; she's forgotten what Canaan IS. You wait till she sees for herself jest
what his standing in this com"
"I agree with Eskew for once," interrupted Peter Bradbury. "I agree because"
"Then you better wait," cried Eskew, allowing him to proceed no farther, "till you hear what you're agreein'
to! I say: you take a young lady like that, pretty and rich and all cultured up, and it stands to reason that she
won't"
"No, it don't," exclaimed Buckalew, impatiently. "Nothing of the sort! I tell you"
Eskew rose to his feet and pounded the pavement with his stick. "It stands to reason that she won't stick to a
man no other decent woman will speak to, a feller that's been the mark for every stone throwed in the town,
ever since he was a boy, an outcast with a reputation as black as a preacher's shoes on Sunday! I don't care if
he's her oldest friend on EARTH, she won't stick to him! She walked with him yesterday, but you can mark
my words: his goose is cooked!" The old man's voice rose, shrill and high. "It ain't in human nature fer her to
do it! You hear what I say: you'll never see her with Joe Louden again in this livin' world, and she as good as
told me so, herself, last night. You can take your oath she's quit him already! Don't"
Eskew paused abruptly, his eyes widening behind his spectacles; his jaw fell; his stick, raised to hammer the
pavement, remained suspended in the air. A sudden color rushed over his face, and he dropped speechless in
his chair. The others, after staring at him in momentary alarm, followed the direction of his gaze.
Just across Main Street, and in plain view, was the entrance to the stairway which led to Joe's office. Ariel
Tabor, all in cool gray, carrying a big bunch of white roses in her whitegloved hands, had just crossed the
sidewalk from a carriage and was ascending the dark stairway. A moment later she came down again,
emptyhanded, got into the carriage, and drove away.
"She missed him," said Squire Buckalew. "I saw him go out half an hour ago. BUT," he added, and,
exercising a selfrestraint close upon the saintly, did not even glance toward the heap which was Mr. Arp, "I
notice she left her flowers!"
Ariel was not the only one who climbed the dingy stairs that day and read the pencilled script upon Joe's
door: "Will not return until evening. J. Louden." Many others came, all exceedingly unlike the first visitor:
some were quick and watchful, dodging into the narrow entrance furtively; some smiled contemptuously as
long as they were in view of the street, drooping wanly as they reached the stairs: some were brazen and
amused; and some were thin and troubled. Not all of them read the message, for not all could read, but all
looked curiously through the halfopened door at the many roses which lifted their heads delicately from a
waterpitcher on Joe's desk to scent that dusty place with their cool breath.
Most of these clients, after a grunt of disappointment, turned and went away; though there were a few, either
unable to read the message or so pressed by anxiety that they disregarded it, who entered the room and sat
down to wait for the absentee. [There were plenty of chairs in the office now, bookcases also, and a big steel
safe.] But when evening came and the final gray of twilight had vanished from the windowpanes, all had
gone except one, a woman who sat patiently, her eyes upon the floor, and her hands folded in her lap, until
the footsteps of the last of the others to depart had ceased to sound upon the pavement below. Then, with a
wordless exclamation, she sprang to her feet, pulled the windowshade carefully down to the sill, and, when
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 80
Page No 83
she had done that, struck a match on the heel of her shoea soiled white canvas shoe, not a small oneand
applied the flame to a gas jet. The yellow light flared up; and she began to pace the room haggardly.
The courthouse bell rang nine, and as the tremors following the last stroke pulsed themselves into silence,
she heard a footfall on the stairs and immediately relapsed into a chair, folding her hands again in her lap, her
expression composing itself to passivity, for the step was very much lighter than Joe's.
A lady beautifully dressed in white dimity appeared in the doorway. She hesitated at the threshold, not,
apparently, because of any timidity (her expression being too thoughtfully assured for that), but almost
immediately she came in and seated herself near the desk, acknowledging the other's presence by a slight
inclination of the head.
This grave courtesy caused a strong, deep flush to spread itself under the rouge which unevenly covered the
woman's cheeks, as she bowed elaborately in return. Then, furtively, during a protracted silence, she took
stock of the newcomer, from the tip of her white suede shoes to the filmy lace and pink roses upon her wide
white hat; and the sidelong gaze lingered marvellingly upon the quiet, delicate hands, slender and finely
expressive, in their white gloves.
Her own hands, unlike the lady's, began to fidget confusedly, and, the silence continuing, she coughed several
times, to effect the preface required by her sense of fitness, before she felt it proper to observe, with a polite
titter:
"Mr. Louden seems to be a good while comin'."
"Have you been waiting very long?" asked the lady.
"Ever since six o'clock!"
"Yes," said the other. "That is very long."
"Yes, ma'am, it cert'nly is." The ice thus broken, she felt free to use her eyes more directly, and, after a long,
frank stare, exclaimed:
"Why, you must be Miss Ariel Tabor, ain't you?"
"Yes." Ariel touched one of the roses upon Joe's desk with her fingertips. "I am Miss Tabor."
"Well, excuse me fer asking; I'm sure it ain't any business of mine," said the other, remembering the manners
due one lady from another. "But I thought it must be. I expect," she added, with loud, inconsequent laughter,
"there's not many in Canaan ain't heard you've come back." She paused, laughed again, nervously, and again,
less loudly, to take off the edge of her abruptness: gradually tittering herself down to a pause, to fill which
she put forth: "Right nice weather we be'n havin'."
"Yes," said Ariel.
"It was rainy, first of last week, though. _I_ don't mind rain so much"this with more laughter, "I stay in
the house when it rains. Some people don't know enough to, they say! You've heard that saying, ain't you,
Miss Tabor?"
"Yes."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 81
Page No 84
"Well, I tell YOU," she exclaimed, noisily, "there's plenty ladies and gen'lemen in this town that's like that!"
Her laughter did not cease; it became louder and shriller. It had been, until now, a mere lubrication of the
conversation, helping to make her easier in Miss Tabor's presence, but as it increased in shrillness, she
seemed to be losing control of herself, as if her laughter were getting away with her; she was not far from
hysteria, when it stopped with a gasp, and she sat up straight in her chair, white and rigid.
"THERE!" she said, listening intently. "Ain't that him?" Steps sounded upon the pavement below; paused for
a second at the foot of the stairs; there was the snap of a match; then the steps sounded again, retreating. She
sank back in her chair limply. "It was only some one stoppin' to light his cigar in the entry. It wasn't Joe
Louden's step, anyway."
"You know his step?" Ariel's eyes were bent upon the woman wonderingly.
"I'd know it tonight," was the answer, delivered with a sharp and painful giggle. "I got plenty reason to!"
Ariel did not respond. She leaned a little closer to the roses upon the desk, letting them touch her face, and
breathing deeply of their fragrance to neutralize a perfume which pervaded the room; an odor as heavy and
cheapsweet as the face of the woman who had saturated her handkerchief with it, a scent which went with
her perfectly and made her unhappily definite; suited to her clumsily dyed hair, to her soiled white shoes, to
the hot red hat smothered in plumage, to the restless stub fingered hands, to the fat, plated rings, of which
she wore a great quantity, though, surprisingly enough, the large diamonds in her ears were pure, and of a
very clear water.
It was she who broke the silence once more. "Well," she drawled, coughing genteelly at the same time,
"better late than never, as the saying is. I wonder who it is gits up all them comical sayings?" Apparently she
had no genuine desire for light upon this mystery, as she continued, immediately: "I have a gen'leman friend
that's always gittin' 'em off. `Well,' he says, `the best of friends must part,' and, `Thou strikest me to the
heart'all kinds of cracks like that. He's real comical. And yet, "she went on in an altered voice, "I don't like
him much. I'd be glad if I'd never seen him."
The change of tone was so marked that Ariel looked at her keenly, to find herself surprised into pitying this
strange client of Joe's; for tears had sprung to the woman's eyes and slid along the lids, where she tried vainly
to restrain them. Her face had altered too, like her voice, haggard lines suddenly appearing about the eyes and
mouth as if they had just been pencilled there: the truth issuing from beneath her pinchbeck simulations, like
a tragic mask revealed by the displacement of a tawdry covering.
"I expect you think I'm real foolish," she said, "but I be'n waitin' so awful longand I got a good deal of
worry on my mind till I see Mr. Louden."
"I am sorry," Ariel turned from the roses, and faced her and the heavy perfume. "I hope he will come soon."
"I hope so," said the other. "It's something to do with me that keeps him away, and the longer he is the more it
scares me." She shivered and set her teeth together. "It's kind of hard, waitin'. I cert'nly got my share of
troubles."
"Don't you think that Mr. Louden will be able to take care of them for you?"
"Oh, I HOPE so, Miss Tabor! If he can't, nobody can." She was crying openly now, wiping her eyes with her
musksoaked handkerchief. "We had to send fer him yesterday afternoon"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 82
Page No 85
"To come to Beaver Beach, do you mean?" asked Ariel, leaning forward.
"Yes, ma'am. It all begun out there,least ways it begun before that with me. It was all my fault. I deserve
all that's comin' to me, I guess. I done wrongI done wrong! I'd oughtn't never to of went out there
yesterday."
She checked herself sharply, but, after a moment's pause, continued, encouraged by the grave kindliness of
the delicate face in the shadow of the wide white hat. "I'd oughtn't to of went," she repeated. "Oh, I reckon I'll
never, never learn enough to keep out o' trouble, even when I see it comin'! But that gentleman friend of
mineMr. Nashville Cory's his namehe kind o' coaxed me into it, and he's right comical when he's with
ladies, and he's good companyand he says, `Claudine, we'll dance the light fantastic,' he says, and I kind o'
wanted something cheerfulI'd be'n workin' steady quite a spell, and it looked like he wanted to show me a
good time, so I went, and that's what started it." Now that she had begun, she babbled on with her story, at
times incoherently; full of excuses, made to herself more than to Ariel, pitifully endeavoring to convince
herself that the responsibility for the muddle she had made was not hers.
"Mr. Cory told me my husband was drinkin' and wouldn't know about it, and, `Besides,' he says, `what's the
odds?' Of course I knowed there was trouble between him and Mr. Fearthat's my husband a good while
ago, when Mr. Fear up and laid him out. That was before me and Mr. Fear got married; I hadn't even be'n to
Canaan then; I was on the stage. I was on the stage quite a while in Chicago before I got acquainted with my
husband."
"You were on the stage?" Ariel exclaimed, involuntarily.
"Yes, ma'am. Livin' pitchers at Goldberg's Rat'skeller, and amunchoor nights I nearly always done a sketch
with a gen'leman friend. That's the way I met Mr. Fear; he seemed to be real struck with me right away, and
soon as I got through my turn he ast me to order whatever I wanted. He's always gen'lemanlike when he ain't
had too much, and even then he vurry, vurry seldom acks rough unless he's jealous. That was the trouble
yesterday. I never would of gone to the Beach if I'd dreamed what was comin'! When we got there I saw
Mikethat's the gen'leman that runs the Beachlookin' at my company and me kind of anxious, and pretty
soon he got me away from Mr. Cory and told me what's what. Seems this Cory only wanted me to go with
him to make my husband mad, and he'd took good care that Mr. Fear heard I'd be there with him! And he'd
be'n hangin' around me, every time he struck town, jest to make Mr. Fear madthe fresh thing! You see he
wanted to make my husband start something again, this Mr. Cory did, and he was fixed for it."
"I don't understand," said Ariel.
"It's this way: if Mr. Fear attacted Mr. Cory, why, Mr. Cory could shoot him down and claim self defence.
You see, it would be easy for Mr. Cory, because Mr Fear nearly killed him when they had their first trouble,
and that would give Mr. Cory a good excuse to shoot if Mr. Fear jest only pushed him. That's the way it is
with the law. Mr. Cory could wipe out their old score and git off scotfree."
"Surely not!"
"Yes, ma'am, that's the way it would be. And when Mike told me that Mr. Cory had got me out there jest to
provoke my husband I went straight up to him and begun to give him a piece of my mind. I didn't talk loud,
because I never was one to make a disturbance and start trouble the way SOME do; and right while I was
talkin' we both see my husband pass the window. Mr. Cory give a kind of yelling laugh and put his arm round
me jest as Mr. Fear come in the door. And then it all happened so quick that you could hardly tell what WAS
goin' on. Mr. Fear, we found afterwards, had promised Mr. Louden that he wouldn't come out there, but he
took too muchyou could see that by the look of himand fergot his promise; fergot everything but me
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 83
Page No 86
and Cory, I guess.
"He come right up to us, where I was tryin' to git away from Cory's armit was the left one he had around
me, and the other behind his backand neither of 'em said a word. Cory kept on laughin' loud as he could,
and Mr. Fear struck him in the mouth. He's little, but he can hit awful hard, and Mr. Cory let out a screech,
and I see his gun go off right in Mr. Fear's face, I thought, but it wasn't; it only scorched him. Most of the
other gen'lemen had run, but Mike made a dive and managed to knock the gun to one side, jest barely in time.
Then Mike and three or four others that come out from behind things separated 'emboth of 'em fightin' to
git at each other. They locked Mr. Cory up in Mike's room, and took Mr. Fear over to where they hitch the
horses. Then Mike sent fer Mr. Louden to come out to talk to my husband and take care of himhe's the
only one can do anything with him when he's like thatbut before Mr. Louden could git there, Mr. Fear
broke loose and run through a cornfield and got away; at least they couldn't find him. And Mr. Cory jumped
through a window and slid down into one of Mike's boats, so they'd both gone. When Mr. Louden come, he
only stayed long enough to hear what had happened and started out to find Happythat's my husband. He's
bound to keep them apart, but he hasn't found Mr. Fear yet or he'd be here."
Ariel had sunk back in her chair. "Why should your husband hide?" she asked, in a low voice.
"Waitin' fer his chance at Cory," the woman answered, huskily. "I expect he's afraid the cops are after him,
too, on account of the trouble, and he doesn't want to git locked up till he's met Cory again. They ain't after
him, but he may not know it. They haven't heard of the trouble, I reckon, or they'd of run Cory in. HE'S
around town today, drinkin' heavy, and I guess he's lookin' fer Mr. Fear about as hard as Mr. Louden is."
She rose to her feet, lifted her coarse hands, and dropped them despairingly. "Oh, I'm scared!" she said. "Mr.
Fear's be'n mighty good to me."
A slow and tired footstep was heard upon the stairs, and Joe's dog ran into the room droopingly, wagged his
tail with no energy, and crept under the desk. Mrs. Fear wheeled toward the door and stood, rigid, her hands
clenched tight, her whole body still, except her breast, which rose and fell with her tumultuous breathing. She
could not wait till the laggard step reached the landing.
"MR. LOUDEN!" she called, suddenly.
Joe's voice came from the stairway. "It's all right, Claudine. It's all fixed up. Don't worry."
Mrs. Fear gave a thick cry of relief and sank back in her chair as Joe entered the room. He came in
shamblingly, with his hand over his eyes as if they were very tired and the light hurt them, so that, for a
moment or two, he did not perceive the second visitor. Then he let his hand fall, revealing a face very white
and worn.
"It's all right, Claudine," he repeated. "It's all right."
He was moving to lay his hat on the desk when his eye caught first the roses, then fell upon Ariel, and he
stopped stockstill with one arm outstretched, remaining for perhaps ten seconds in that attitude, while she,
her lips parted, her eyes lustrous, returned his gaze with a look that was as inscrutable as it was kind.
"Yes," she said, as if in answer to a question, "I have come here twice today." She nodded slightly toward
Mrs. Fear. "I can wait. I am very glad you bring good news."
Joe turned dazedly toward the other. "Claudine," he said, "you've been telling Miss Tabor."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 84
Page No 87
"I cert'nly have!" Mrs. Fear's expression had cleared and her tone was cheerful. "I don't see no harm in that!
I'm sure she's a good friend of YOURS, Mr. Louden."
Joe glanced at Ariel with a faint, troubled smile, and turned again to Mrs. Fear. "I've had a long talk with
Happy."
"I'm awful glad. Is he ready to listen to reason? she asked, with a titter.
"He's waiting for you."
"Where?" She rose quickly.
"Stop," said Joe, sharply. "You must be very careful with him"
"Don't you s'pose I'm goin' to be?" she interrupted, with a catch in her voice. "Don't you s'pose I've had
trouble enough?"
"No," said Joe, deliberately and impersonally, "I don't. Unless you keep remembering to be careful all the
time, you'll follow the first impulse you have, as you did yesterday, and your excuse will be that you never
thought any harm would come of it. He's in a queer mood; but he will forgive you if you ask him"
"Well, ain't that what I WANT to do!" she exclaimed.
"I know, I know," he said, dropping into the deskchair and passing his hand over his eyes with a gesture of
infinite weariness. "But you must be very careful. I hunted for him most of the night and all day. He was
trying to keep out of my way because he didn't want me to find him until he had met this fellow Nashville.
Happy is a hard man to come at when he doesn't care to be found, and he kept shifting from place to place
until I ran him down. Then I got him in a corner and told him that you hadn't meant any harmwhich is
always true of you, poor woman!and I didn't leave him till he had promised me to forgive you if you
would come and ask him. And you must keep him out of Cory's way until I can arrange to have himCory, I
meansent out of town. Will you?"
"Why, cert'nly," she answered, smiling. "That Nashville's the vurry last person I ever want to see againthe
fresh thing!" Mrs. Fear's burden had fallen; her relief was perfect and she beamed vapidly; but Joe marked
her renewed irresponsibility with an anxious eye.
"You mustn't make any mistakes," he said, rising stiffly with fatigue.
"Not ME! _I_ don't take no more chances," she responded, tittering happily. "Not after yesterday. MY! but
it's a load off my shoulders! I do hate it to have gen'lemen quarrelling over me, especially Mr. Fear. I never
DID like to START anything; I like to see people laugh and be friendly, and I'm mighty glad it's all blown
over. I kind o' thought it would, all along. PSHO!" She burst into genuine, noisy laughter. "I don't expect
either of 'em meant no real harm to each other, after they got cooled off a little! If they'd met today, they'd
probably both run! Now, Mr. Louden, where's Happy?"
Joe went to the door with her. He waited a moment, perplexed, then his brow cleared and he said in a low
voice: "You know the alley beyond Vent Miller's poolroom? Go down the alley till you come to the second
gate. Go in, and you'll see a basement door opening into a little room under Miller's bar. The door won't be
locked, and Happy's in there waiting for you. But remember"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 85
Page No 88
"Oh, don't you worry," she cut him off, loudly. "I know HIM! Inside of an hour I'll have him LAUGHIN'
over all this. You'll see!"
When she had gone, he stood upon the landing looking thoughtfully after her. "Perhaps, after all, that is the
best mood to let her meet him in," he murmured.
Then, with a deep breath, he turned. The heavy perfume had gone; the air was clear and sweet, and Ariel was
pressing her face into the roses again. As he saw how like them she was, he was shaken with a profound and
mysterious sigh, like that which moves in the breast of one who listens in the dark to his dearest music.
XV. HAPPY FEAR GIVES HIMSELF UP
"I know how tired you are," said Ariel, as he came back into the room. "I shall not keep you long."
"Ah, please do!" he returned, quickly, beginning to fumble with the shade of a studentlamp at one end of the
desk.
"Let me do that," she said. "Sit down." He obeyed at once, and watched her as she lit the lamp, and,
stretching upon tiptoe, turned out the gas. "No," she continued, seated again and looking across the desk at
him, "I wanted to see you at the first possible opportunity, but what I have to say"
"Wait," he interrupted. "Let me tell you why I did not come yesterday."
"You need not tell me. I know." She glanced at the chair which had been occupied by Mrs. Fear. "I knew last
night that they had sent for you."
"You did?" he exclaimed. "Ah, I understand. Sam Warden must have told you."
"Yes," she said. "It was he; and I have been wondering ever since how he heard of it. He knew last night, but
there was nothing in the papers this morning; and until I came here I heard no one else speak of it; yet Canaan
is not large."
Joe laughed. "It wouldn't seem strange if you lived with the Canaan that I do. Sam had been downtown
during the afternoon and had met friends; the colored people are a good deal like a freemasonry, you know. A
great many knew last night all about what had happened, and had their theories about what might happen
today in case the two men met. Still, you see, those who knew, also knew just what people not to tell. The
Tocsin is the only newspaper worth the name here; but even if the Tocsin had known of the trouble, it
wouldn't have been likely to mention it. That's a thing I don't understand." He frowned and rubbed the back
of his head. "There's something underneath it. For more than a year the Tocsin hasn't spoken of Beaver
Beach. I'd like to know why."
"Joe," she said, slowly, "tell me something truly. A man said to me yesterday that he found life here
insufferable. Do you find it so?"
"Why, no!" he answered, surprised.
"Do you hate Canaan?"
"Certainly not."
"You don't find it dull, provincial, unsympathetic?"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 86
Page No 89
He laughed cheerily. "Well, there's this," he explained: "I have an advantage over your friend. I see a more
interesting side of things probably. The people I live among are pretty thorough cosmopolites in a way, and
the life I lead"
"I think I begin to understand a little about the life you lead," she interrupted. "Then you don't complain of
Canaan?"
"Of course not."
She threw him a quick, bright, happy look, then glanced again at the chair in which Mrs. Fear had sat. "Joe,"
she said, "last night I heard the people singing in the houses, the old Sundayevening way. It `took me back
so'!"
"Yes, it would. And something else: there's one hymn they sing more than any other; it's Canaan's favorite.
Do you know what it is?"
"Is it `Rescue the Perishing'?"
"That's it. `Rescue the Perishing'!" he cried, and repeating the words again, gave forth a peal of laughter so
hearty that it brought tears to his eyes. "`RESCUE THE PERISHING'!"
At first she did not understand his laughter, but, after a moment, she did, and joined her own to it, though
with a certain tremulousness.
"It IS funny, isn't it?" said Joe, wiping the moisture from his eyes. Then all trace of mirth left him. "Is it really
YOU, sitting here and laughing with me, Ariel?"
"It seems to be," she answered, in a low voice. "I'm not at all sure."
"You didn't think, yesterday afternoon," he began, almost in a whisper," you didn't think that I had failed
to come because I" He grew very red, and shifted the sentence awkwardly: "I was afraid you might think
that I wasthat I didn't come because I might have been the same way again that I was whenwhen I met
you at the station?"
"Oh no!" she answered, gently. "No. I knew better."
"And do you know," he faltered, "that that is all over? That it can never happen again?"
"Yes, I know it," she returned, quickly.
"Then you know a little of what I owe you."
"No, no," she protested.
"Yes," he said. "You've made that change in me already. It wasn't hardit won't bethough it might have
been ifif you hadn't come soon."
"Tell me something," she demanded. "If these people had not sent for you yesterday, would you have come to
Judge Pike's house to see me? You said you would try." She laughed a little, and looked away from him. "I
want to know if you would have come."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 87
Page No 90
There was a silence, and in spite of her averted glance she knew that he was looking at her steadily. Finally,
"Don't you know?" he said.
She shook her head and blushed faintly.
"Don't you know?" he repeated.
She looked up and met his eyes, and thereupon both became very grave. "Yes, I do," she answered. "You
would have come. When you left me at the gate and went away, you were afraid. But you would have come."
"Yes,I'd have come. You are right. I was afraid at first; but I knew," he went on, rapidly, "that you would
have come to the gate to meet me."
"You understood that?" she cried, her eyes sparkling and her face flushing happily.
"Yes. I knew that you wouldn't have asked me to come," he said, with a catch in his voice which was half
chuckle, half groan, "if you hadn't meant to take care of me! And it came to me that you would know how to
do it."
She leaned back in her chair, and again they laughed together, but only for a moment, becoming serious and
very quiet almost instantly.
"I haven't thanked you for the roses," he said.
"Oh yes, you did. When you first looked at them!"
"So I did," he whispered. "I'm glad you saw. To find them here took my breath awayand to find you with
them"
"I brought them this morning, you know."
"Would you have come if you had not understood why I failed yesterday?"
"Oh yes, I think so," she returned, the fine edge of a smile upon her lips. "For a time last evening, before I
heard what had happened, I thought you were too frightened a friend to bother about."
He made a little ejaculation, partly joyful, partly sad.
"And yet," she went on, "I think that I should have come this morning, after all, even if you had a poorer
excuse for your absence, because, you see, I came on business."
"You did?"
"That's why I've come again. That makes it respectable for me to be here now, doesn't it?for me to have
come out alone after dark without their knowing it? I'm here as your client, Joe."
"Why?" he asked.
She did not answer at once, but picked up a pen from beneath her hand on the desk, and turning it,
meditatively felt its point with her forefinger before she said slowly, "Are most men careful of other
people'swell, of other people's money?"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 88
Page No 91
"You mean Martin Pike?" he asked.
"Yes. I want you to take charge of everything I have for me."
He bent a frowning regard upon the lamp shade. "You ought to look after your own property," he said. "You
surely have plenty of time."
"You meanyou mean you won't help me?" she returned, with intentional pathos.
"Ariel!" he laughed, shortly, in answer; then asked, "What makes you think Judge Pike isn't trustworthy?"
"Nothing very definite perhaps, unless it was his look when I told him that I meant to ask you to take charge
of things for me."
"He's been rather hard pressed this year, I think," said Joe. "You might be rightif he could have found a
way. I hope he hasn't."
"I'm afraid," she began, gayly, "that I know very little of my own affairs. He sent me a draft every three
months, with receipts and other things to sign and return to him. I haven't the faintest notion of what I
ownexcept the old house and some money from the income that I hadn't used and brought with me. Judge
Pike has all the paperseverything."
Joe looked troubled. "And Roger Tabor, did he"
"The dear man!" She shook her head. "He was just the same. To him poor Uncle Jonas's money seemed to
come from heaven through the hands of Judge Pike"
"And there's a handsome roundabout way!" said Joe.
"Wasn't it!" she agreed, cheerfully. "And he trusted the Judge absolutely. I don't, you see."
He gave her a thoughtful look and nodded. "No, he isn't a good man," he said, "not even according to his
lights; but I doubt if he could have managed to get away with anything of consequence after he became the
administrator. He wouldn't have tried it, probably, unless he was more desperately pushed than I think he has
been. It would have been too dangerous. Suppose you wait a week or so and think it over."
"But there's something I want you to do for me immediately, Joe."
"What's that?"
"I want the old house put in order. I'm going to live there."
"Alone?"
"I'm almost twentyseven, and that's being enough of an old maid for me to risk Canaan's thinking me
eccentric, isn't it?"
"It will think anything you do is all right."
"And once," she cried, "it thought everything I did all wrong!"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 89
Page No 92
"Yes. That's the difference."
"You mean it will commend me because I'm thought rich?"
"No, no," he said, meditatively, "it isn't that. It's because everybody will be in love with you."
"Quite everybody!" she asked.
"Certainly," he replied. "Anybody who didn't would be absurd."
"Ah, Joe!" she laughed. "You always were the nicest boy in the world, my dear!"
At that he turned toward her with a sudden movement and his lips parted, but not to speak. She had rested one
arm upon the desk, and her cheek upon her hand; the pen she had picked up, still absently held in her fingers,
touching her lips; and it was given to him to know that he would always keep that pen, though he would
never write with it again. The soft lamplight fell across the lower part of her face, leaving her eyes, which
were lowered thoughtfully, in the shadow of her hat. The room was blotted out in darkness behind her. Like
the background of an antique portrait, the office, with its dusty corners and shelves and hideous safe, had
vanished, leaving the charming and thoughtful face revealed against an even, spacious brownness. Only Ariel
and the roses and the lamp were clear; and a strange, small pain moved from Joe's heart to his throat, as he
thought that this ugly office, always before so harsh and grim and lonelyloneliest for him when it had been
most crowded,was now transfigured into something very, very different from an office; that this place
where he sat, with a lamp and flowers on a desk between him and a woman who called him "my dear," must
be likelike something that people called "home."
And then he leaned across the desk toward her, as he said again what he had said a little while before,and
his voice trembled:
"Ariel, it IS you?"
She looked at him and smiled.
"You'll be here always, won't you? You're not going away from Canaan again?"
For a moment it seemed that she had not heard him. Then her bright glance at him wavered and fell. She rose,
turning slightly away from him, but not so far that he could not see the sudden agitation in her face.
"Ah!" he cried, rising too, "I don't want you to think I don't understand, or that I meant _I_ should ever ask
you to stay here! I couldn't mean that; you know I couldn't, don't you? You know I understand that it's all just
your beautiful friendliness, don't you?"
"It isn't beautiful; it's just ME, Joe," she said. "It couldn't be any other way."
"It's enough that you should be here now," he went on, bravely, his voice steady, though his hand shook.
"Nothing so wonderful as your staying could ever actually happen. It's just a light coming into a dark room
and out again. One day, long agoI never forgot itsome appleblossoms blew by me as I passed an
orchard; and it's like that, too. But, oh, my dear, when you go you'll leave a fragrance in my heart that will
last!"
She turned toward him, her face suffused with a rosy light. "You'd rather have died than have said that to me
once," she cried. "I'm glad you're weak enough now to confess it!"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 90
Page No 93
He sank down again into his chair and his arms fell heavily on the desk. "Confess it!" he cried, despairingly.
"And you don't deny that you're going away againso it's true! I wish I hadn't realized it so soon. I think I'd
rather have tried to fool myself about it a little longer!"
"Joe," she cried, in a voice of great pain, "you mustn't feel like that! How do you know I'm going away again?
Why should I want the old house put in order unless I mean to stay? And if I went, you know that I could
never change; you know how I've always cared for you"
"Yes," he said, "I do know how. It was always the same and it always will be, won't it?"
"I've shown that," she returned, quickly.
"Yes. You say I know how you've cared for meand I do. I know HOW. It's just in one certain
wayJonathan and David"
"Isn't that a pretty good way, Joe?"
"Never fear that I don't understand!" He got to his feet again and looked at her steadily.
"Thank you, Joe." She wiped sudden tears from her eyes.
"Don't you be sorry for me," he said. "Do you think that `passing the love of women' isn't enough for me?"
"No," she answered, humbly.
"I'll have people at work on the old house to morrow," he began. "And for the"
"I've kept you so long!" she interrupted, helped to a meek sort of gayety by his matteroffact tone.
"Goodnight, Joe." She gave him her hand. "I don't want you to come with me. It isn't very late and this is
Canaan."
"I want to come with you, however," he said, picking up his hat. "You can't go alone."
"But you are so tired, you"
She was interrupted. There were muffled, flying footsteps on the stairs, and a shabby little man ran furtively
into the room, shut the door behind him, and set his back against it. His face was mottled like a colored map,
thick lines of perspiration shining across the splotches.
"Joe," he panted, "I've got Nashville good, and he's got me good, too;I got to clear out. He's fixed me good,
damn him! but he won't trouble nobody"
Joe was across the room like a flying shadow.
"QUIET!" His voice rang like a shot, and on the instant his hand fell sharply across the speaker's mouth. "In
THERE, Happy!"
He threw an arm across the little man's shoulders and swung him toward the door of the other room.
Happy Fear looked up from beneath the down bent brim of his black slouch hat; his eyes followed an
imperious gesture toward Ariel, gave her a brief, ghastly stare, and stumbled into the inner chamber.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 91
Page No 94
"Wait!" Joe said, cavalierly, to Ariel. He went in quickly after Mr. Fear and closed the door.
This was Joseph Louden, AttorneyatLaw; and to Ariel it was like a new face seen in a flashlight not at
all the face of Joe. The sense of his strangeness, his unfamiliarity in this electrical aspect, overcame her. She
was possessed by astonishment: Did she know him so well, after all? The strange client had burst in, shaken
beyond belief with some passion unknown to her, but Joe, alert, and masterful beyond denial, had controlled
him instantly; had swept him into the other room as with a broom. Could it be that Joe sometimes did other
things in the same sweeping fashion?
She heard a match struck in the next room, and the voices of the two men: Joe's, then the other's, the latter at
first broken and protestive, but soon rising shrilly. She could hear only fragments. Once she heard the client
cry, almost scream: "By God! Joe, I thought Claudine had chased him around there to DO me!" And,
instantly, followed Louden's voice:
"STEADY, HAPPY, STEADY!"
The name "Claudine" startled her; and although she had had no comprehension of the argot of Happy Fear,
the sense of a mysterious catastrophe oppressed her; she was sure that something horrible had happened. She
went to the window; touched the shade, which disappeared upward immediately, and lifted the sash. The
front of a square building in the Courthouse Square was bright with lights; and figures were passing in and
out of the Main Street doors. She remembered that this was the jail.
"Claudine!" The voice of the husband of Claudine was like the voice of one lamenting over Jerusalem.
"STEADY, HAPPY, STEADY!"
"But, Joe, if they git me, what'll she do? She can't hold her job no longernot after this. . . ."
The door opened, and the two men came out, Joe with his hand on the other's shoulder. The splotches had
gone from Happy's face, leaving it an even, deathly white. He did not glance toward Ariel; he gazed far
beyond all that was about him; and suddenly she was aware of a great tragedy. The little man's chin trembled
and he swallowed painfully; nevertheless he bore himself upright and dauntlessly as the two walked slowly to
the door, like men taking part in some fateful ceremony. Joe stopped upon the landing at the head of the
stairs, but Happy Fear went on, clumping heavily down the steps.
"It's all right, Happy," said Joe. "It's better for you to go alone. Don't you worry. I'll see you through. It will
be all right."
"Just as YOU say, Joe," a breaking voice came back from the foot of the steps,"just as YOU say!"
The lawyer turned from the landing and went rapidly to the window beside Ariel. Together they watched the
shabby little figure cross the street below; and she felt an infinite pathos gathering about it as it paused for a
moment, hesitating, underneath the arclamp at the corner. They saw the white face lifted as Happy Fear
gave one last look about him; then he set his shoulders sturdily, and steadfastly entered the door of the jail.
Joe took a deep breath. "Now we'll go," he said. "I must be quick."
"What was it?" she asked, tremulously, as they reached the street. "Can you tell me?"
"Nothingjust an old story."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 92
Page No 95
He had not offered her his arm, but walked on hurriedly, a pace ahead of her, though she came as rapidly as
she could. She put her hand rather timidly on his sleeve, and without need of more words from her he
understood her insistence.
"That was the husband of the woman who told you her story," he said. "Perhaps it would shock you less if I
tell you now than if you heard it to morrow, as you will. He's just shot the other man."
"Killed him!" she gasped.
"Yes," he answered. "He wanted to run away, but I wouldn't let him. He has my word that I'll clear him, and I
made him give himself up."
XVI. THE TWO CANAANS
When Joe left Ariel at Judge Pike's gate she lingered there, her elbows upon the uppermost crossbar, like a
village girl at twilight, watching his thin figure vanish into the heavy shadow of the maples, then emerge
momentarily, ghostgray and rapid, at the lighted crossing down the street, to disappear again under the trees
beyond, followed a second later by a brownish streak as the mongrel heeled after him. When they had passed
the second corner she could no longer be certain of them, although the street was straight, with flat,
draughtsmanlike Western directness: both figures and Joe's quick footsteps merging with the night. Still she
did not turn to go; did not alter her position, nor cease to gaze down the dim street. Few lights shone; almost
all the windows of the houses were darkened, and, save for the summer murmurs, the faint creak of upper
branches, and the infinitesimal voices of insects in the grass, there was silence: the pleasant and somnolent
hush, swathed in which that part of Canaan crosses to the far side of the eleventh hour.
But Ariel, not soothed by this balm, sought beyond it, to see that unquiet Canaan whither her old friend bent
his steps and found his labor and his dwelling: that other Canaan where peace did not fall comfortably with
the coming of night; a place as alien in habit, in thought, and almost in speech as if it had been upon another
continent. And yetso strange is the duality of townsit lay but a few blocks distant.
Here, about Ariel, as she stood at the gate of the Pike Mansion, the houses of the good (secure of salvation
and daily bread) were closed and quiet, as safely shut and sound asleep as the churches; but deeper in the
town there was light and life and merry, evil industry,screened, but strong to last until morning; there were
haunts of haggard merriment in plenty: surreptitious chambers where roulettewheels swam beneath dizzied
eyes; ill favored bars, reached by devious ways, where quavering voices offered song and were harshly
checked; and through the burdened air of this Canaan wandered heavy smells of musk like that upon Happy
Fear's wife, who must now be so pale beneath her rouge. And above all this, and for all this, and because of
all this, was that one re sort to which Joe now made his way; that haven whose lights burn all night long,
whose doors are never closed, but are open from dawn until dawn the jail.
There, in that desolate refuge, lay Happy Fear, surrendered sturdily by himself at Joe's word. The picture of
the little man was clear and fresh in Ariel's eyes, and though she had seen him when he was newly come from
a thing so terrible that she could not realize it as a fact, she felt only an overwhelming pity for him. She was
not even horrorstricken, though she had shuddered. The pathos of the shabby little figure crossing the street
toward the lighted doors had touched her. Something about him had appealed to her, for he had not seemed
wicked; his face was not cruel, though it was desperate. Perhaps it was partly his very desperation which had
moved her. She had understood Joe, when he told her, that this man was his friend; and comprehended his
great fear when he said: "I've got to clear him! I promised him."
Over and over Joe had reiterated: "I've got to save him! I've got to!" She had answered gently, "Yes, Joe,"
hurrying to keep up with him. "He's a good man," he said. "I've known few better, given his chances. And
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 93
Page No 96
none of this would have happened except for his oldtime friendship for me. It was his loyaltyoh, the
rarest and absurdest loyalty!that made the first trouble between him and the man he shot. I've got to clear
him!"
"Will it be hard?"
"They may make it so. I can only see part of it surely. When his wife left the office, she met Cory on the
street. You saw what a pitiful kind of fool she was, irresponsible and helpless and feather brained. There are
thousands of women like that everywheresome of them are `Court Beauties,' I dare sayand they always
mix things up; but they are most dangerous when they're like Claudine, because then they live among men of
action like Cory and Fear. Cory was artful: he spent the day about town telling people that he had always
liked Happy; that his ill feeling of yesterday was all gone; he wanted to find him and shake his hand, bury
past troubles and be friends. I think he told Claudine the same thing when they met, and convinced the tiny
brainlet of his sincerity. Cory was a man who `had a way with him,' and I can see Claudine flattered at the
idea of being peace maker between `two such nice gen'lemen as Mr. Cory and Mr. Fear.' Her commonest
asseveration quite genuine, toois that she doesn't like to have the gen'lemen making trouble about her!
So the poor imbecile led him to where her husband was waiting. All that Happy knew of this was in her cry
afterwards. He was sitting alone, when Cory threw open the door and said, `I've got you this time, Happy!'
His pistol was raised but never fired. He waited too long, meaning to establish his case of `selfdefence,' and
Fear is the quickest man I know. Cory fell just inside the door. Claudine stumbled upon him as she came
running after him, crying out to her husband that she `never meant no trouble,' that Cory had sworn to her that
he only wanted to shake hands and `make up.' Other people heard the shot and broke into the room, but they
did not try to stop Fear; he warned them off and walked out without hindrance, and came to me. I've got to
clear him."
Ariel knew what he meant: she realized the actual thing as it was, and, though possessed by a strange feeling
that it must all be medieval and not possibly of today, understood that he would have to fight to keep his
friend from being killed; that the unhappy creature who had run into the office out of the dark stood in high
danger of having his neck broken, unless Joe could help him. He made it clear to her that the State would kill
Happy if it could; that it would be a point of pride with certain deliberate men holding office to take the life
of the little man; that if they did secure his death it would be set down to their efficiency, and was even
competent as campaign material. "I wish to point out," Joe had heard a candidate for reelection vehemently
orate, `that in addition to the other successful convictions I have named, I and my assistants have achieved
the sending of three men to the gallows during my term of office!"
"I can't tell yet," said Joe, at parting. "It may be hard. I'm so sorry you saw all this. I"
"Oh NO!" she cried. "I want to UNDERSTAND!"
She was still there, at the gate, her elbows resting upon the crossbar, when, a long time after Joe had gone,
there came from the alley behind the big back yard the minor chordings of a quartette of those dark strollers
who never seem to go to bed, who play by night and playfully pretend to work by day:
"You know my soul is afull o' thematrubbils, Evry mawn! I cain' awalk withouten I stumbils! Then
le'ss go on Keep walkin' on! These times is sow'owful, an' I am pow'owful Sick an' fo'lawn!"
She heard a step upon the path behind her, and, turning, saw a whitewrapped figure coming toward her.
"Mamie?" she called.
"Hush!" Mamie lifted a warning hand. "The windows are open," she whispered. "They might hear you!"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 94
Page No 97
"Why haven't you gone to bed?"
"Oh, don't you see?" Mamie answered, in deep distress,"I've been sitting up for you. We all thought you
were writing letters in your room, but after papa and mamma had gone to bed I went in to tell you good night,
and you weren't there, nor anywhere else; so I knew you must have gone out. I've been sitting by the front
window, waiting to let you in, but I went to sleep until a little while ago, when the telephonebell rang and he
got up and answered it. He kept talking a long time; it was something about the Tocsin, and I'm afraid there's
been a murder downtown. When he went back to bed I fell asleep again, and then those darkies woke me
up. How on earth did you expect to get in? Don't you know he always locks up the house?"
"I could have rung," said Ariel.
"Ohoh!" gasped Miss Pike; and, after she had recovered somewhat, asked: "Do you mind telling me where
you've been? I won't tell himnor mamma, either. I think, after all, I was wrong yesterday to follow
Eugene's advice. He meant for the best, but I"
"Don't think that. You weren't wrong." Ariel put her arm round the other's waist. "I went to talk over some
things with Mr. Louden."
"I think," whispered Mamie, trembling, "that you are the bravest girl I ever knewandandI could
almost believe there's some good in him, since you like him so. I know there is. And II think he's had a
hard time. I want you to know I won't even tell Eugene!"
"You can tell everybody in the world," said Ariel, and kissed her.
XVII. MR. SHEEHAN'S HINTS
"Never," said the Tocsin on the morrow, "has this community been stirred to deeper indignation than by the
coldblooded and unmitigated brutality of the deliberate murder committed almost under the very shadow of
the Court house cupola last night. The victim was not a man of good repute, it is true, but at the moment of
his death he was in the act of performing a noble and generous action which showed that he might have
become, if he lived, a good and lawfearing citizen. In brief, he went to forgive his enemy and was stretching
forth the hand of fellowship when that enemy shot him down. Not half an hour before his death, Cory had
repeated within the hearing of a dozen men what he had been saying all day, as many can testify: `I want to
find my old friend Fear and shake hands with him. I want to tell him that I forgive him and that I am ashamed
of whatever has been my part in the trouble between us.' He went with that intention to his death. The wife of
the murderer has confessed that this was the substance of what he said to her, and that she was convinced of
his peaceful intentions. When they reached the room where her husband was waiting for her, Cory entered
first. The woman claims now that as they neared the vicinity he hastened forward at a pace which she could
not equal. Naturally, her testimony on all points favoring her husband is practically worthless. She followed
and heard the murdered man speak, though what his words were she declares she does not know, and of
course the murderer, after consultation with his lawyer, claims that their nature was threatening. Such a
statement, in determining the truth, is worse than valueless. It is known and readily proved that Fear
repeatedly threatened the deceased's life yesterday, and there is no question in the mind of any man, woman,
or child, who reads these words, of the cold blooded nature of the crime. The slayer, who had formerly made
a murderous attack upon his victim, lately quarrelled with him and uttered threats, as we have stated, upon his
life. The dead man came to him with protestations of friendship and was struck down a corpse. It is
understood that the defence will in desperation set up the theory of selfdefence, based on an unsubstantiated
claim that Cory entered the room with a drawn pistol. No pistol was found in the room. The weapon with
which the deed was accomplished was found upon the person of the murderer when he was seized by the
police, one chamber discharged. Another revolver was discovered upon the person of the woman, when she
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 95
Page No 98
was arrested on the scene of the crime. This, upon being strictly interrogated, she said she had picked up from
the floor in the confusion, thinking it was her husband's and hoping to conceal it. The chambers were full and
undischarged, and we have heard it surmised that the defence means to claim that it was Cory's. Cory
doubtless went on his errand of forgiveness unarmed, and beyond doubt the second weapon belonged to the
woman herself, who has an unenviable record.
"The point of it all is plainly this: here is an unquestionable murder in the first degree, and the people of this
city and county are outraged and incensed that such a crime should have been committed in their lawabiding
and respectable community. With whom does the fault lie? On whose head is this murder? Not with the
authorities, for they do not countenance crime. Has it come to the pass that, counting on juggleries of the law,
criminals believe that they may kill, maim, burn, and slay as they list without punishment? Is this to be
another instance of the law's delays and immunity for a hideous crime, compassed by a cunning and cynical
trickster of legal technicalities? The people of Canaan cry out for a speedy trial, speedy conviction, and
speedy punishment of this coldblooded and murderous monster. If he is not dealt with quickly according to
his deserts, the climax is upon us and the limit of Canaan's patience has been reached.
"One last word, and we shall be glad to have its significance noted: J. Louden, Esq., has been retained for the
defence! The murderer, before being apprehended by the authorities, WENT STRAIGHT FROM THE
SCENE OF HIS CRIME TO PLACE HIS RETAINER IN HIS ATTORNEY'S POCKET! HOW LONG IS
THIS TO LAST?"
The Tocsin was quoted on street corners that morning, in shop and store and office, wherever people talked
of the Cory murder; and that was everywhere, for the people of Canaan and of the country roundabout talked
of nothing else. Women chattered of it in parlor and kitchen; men gathered in small groups on the street and
shook their heads ominously over it; farmers, meeting on the road, halted their teams and loudly damned the
little man in the Canaan jail; milkmen lingered on back porches over their cans to agree with cooks that it was
an awful thing, and that if ever any man deserved hanging, that there Fear deserved it his lawyer along
with him! Tipsy men hammered bars with fists and beerglasses, inquiring if there was no rope to be had in
the town; and Joe Louden, returning to his office from the little restaurant where he sometimes ate his
breakfast, heard hisses following him along Main Street. A clerk, a fatshouldered, blueaproned, pimple
cheeked youth, stood in the open doors of a grocery, and as he passed, stared him in the face and said "Yah!"
with supreme disgust.
Joe stopped. "Why?" he asked, mildly.
The clerk put two fingers in his mouth and whistled shrilly in derision. "You'd ort to be run out o' town!" he
exclaimed.
"I believe," said Joe, "that we have never met before."
"Go on, you shyster!"
Joe looked at him gravely. "My dear sir," he returned, "you speak to me with the familiarity of an old friend."
The clerk did not recover so far as to be capable of repartee until Joe had entered his own stairway. Then,
with a bitter sneer, he seized a bad potato from an open barrel and threw it at the mongrel, who had paused to
examine the landscape. The missile failed, and Respectability, after bestowing a slightly injured look upon
the clerk, followed his master.
In the office the redbearded man sat waiting. Not so redbearded as of yore, however, was Mr. Sheehan, but
grizzled and gray, and, this morning, gray of face, too, as he sat, perspiring and anxious, wiping a troubled
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 96
Page No 99
brow with a black silk handkerchief.
"Here's the devil and all to pay at last, Joe," he said, uneasily, on the other's entrance. "This is the worst I ever
knew; and I hate to say it, but I doubt yer pullin' it off."
"I've got to, Mike."
"I hope on my soul there's a chanst of it! I like the little man, Joe."
"So do I."
"I know ye do, my boy. But here's this Tocsin kickin' up the public sentiment; and if there ever was a follerin'
sheep on earth, it's that same public sentiment!"
"If it weren't for that"Joe flung himself heavily in a chair"there'd not be so much trouble. It's a clear
enough case."
"But don't ye see," interrupted Sheehan, "the Tocsin's tried it and convicted him aforehand? And that if things
keep goin' the way they've started today, the gran' jury's bound to indict him, and the trial jury to convict
him? They wouldn't dare not to! What's more, they'll want to! And they'll rush the trial, summer or no
summer, and"
"I know, I know."
"I'll tell ye one thing," said the other, wiping his forehead with the black handkerchief, "and that's this, my
boy: last night's business has just about put the cap on the Beach fer me. I'm sick of it and I'm tired of it! I'm
ready to quit, sir!"
Joe looked at him sharply. "Don't you think my old notion of what might be done could be made to pay?"
Sheehan laughed. "Whoo! You and yer hints, Joe! How long past have ye come around me with 'em! `I
b'lieve ye c'd make more money, Mike'that's the way ye'd put it,`if ye altered the Beach a bit. Make a
little countryside restaurant of it,' ye'd say, `and have good cookin', and keep the boys and girls from raisin'
so much hell out there. Soon ye'd have other people comin' beside the regular crowd. Make a little garden on
the shore, and let 'em eat at tables under trees an' grapearbors' "
"Well, why not?" asked Joe.
"Haven't I been tellin' ye I'm thinkin' of it? It's only yer way of hintin' that's funny to me,yer way of sayin'
I'd make more money, because ye're afraid of preachin' at any of us: partly because ye know the little good it
'd be, and partly because ye have humor. Well, I'm thinkin' ye'll git yer way. I'M willin' to go into the
missionary business with ye!"
"Mike!" said Joe, angrily, but he grew very red and failed to meet the other's eye, "I'm not"
"Yes, ye are!" cried Sheehan. "Yes, sir! It's a thing ye prob'ly haven't had the nerve to say to yerself since a
boy, but that's yer notion inside: ye're little better than a missionary! It took me a long while to understand
what was drivin' ye, but I do now. And ye've gone the right way about it, because we know ye'll stand fer us
when we're in trouble and fight fer us till we git a square deal, as ye're goin' to fight for Happy now."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 97
Page No 100
Joe looked deeply troubled. "Never mind," he said, crossly, and with visible embarrassment. "You think you
couldn't make more at the Beach if you ran it on my plan?"
"I'm game to try," said Sheehan, slowly. "I'm too old to hold 'em down out there the way I yoosta could, and
I'm sick of itsick of it into the very bones of me!" He wiped his forehead. "Where's Claudine?"
"Held as a witness."
"I'm not sorry fer HER!" said the redbearded man, emphatically. "Women o' that kind are so lightheaded
it's a wonder they don't float. Think of her pickin' up Cory's gun from the floor and hidin' it in her clothes!
Took it fer granted it was Happy's, and thought she'd help him by hidin' it! There's a hard point fer ye, Joe: to
prove the gun belonged to Cory. There's nobody about here could swear to it. I couldn't myself, though I
forced him to stick it back in his pocket yesterday. He was a wanderer, too; and ye'll have to send a keen one
to trace him, I'm thinkin', to find where he got it, so's ye can show it in court."
"I'm going myself. I've found out that he came here from Denver."
"And from where before that?"
"I don't know, but I'll keep on travelling till I get what I want."
"That's right, my boy," exclaimed the other, heartily, "It may be a long trip, but ye're all the little man has to
depend on. Did ye notice the Tocsin didn't even give him the credit fer givin' himself up?"
"Yes," said Joe. "It's part of their game."
"Did it strike ye now," Mr. Sheehan asked, earnestly, leaning forward in his chair,"did it strike ye that the
Tocsin was aimin' more to do Happy harm because of you than himself?"
"Yes." Joe looked sadly out of the window. "I've thought that over, and it seemed possible that I might do
Happy more good by giving his case to some other lawyer."
"No, sir!" exclaimed the proprietor of Beaver Beach, loudly. "They've begun their attack; they're bound to
keep it up, and they'd manage to turn it to the discredit of both of ye. Besides, Happy wouldn't have no other
lawyer; he'd ruther be hung with you fightin' fer him than be cleared by anybody else. I b'lieve it,on my
soul I do! But look here," he went on, leaning still farther forward; "I want to know if it struck ye that this
morning the Tocsin attacked ye in a way that was somehow vi'lenter than ever before?"
"Yes," replied Joe, "because it was aimed to strike where it would most count."
"It ain't only that," said the other, excitedly. "It ain't only that! I want ye to listen. Now see here: the Tocsin is
Pike, and the town is Pike I mean the town ye naturally belonged to. Ain't it?"
"In a way, I supposeyes."
"In a way!" echoed the other, scornfully. "Ye know it is! Even as a boy Pike disliked ye and hated the kind of
a boy ye was. Ye wasn't respectable and he was! Ye wasn't rich and he was! Ye had a grin on yer face when
ye'd meet him on the street." The redbearded man broke off at a gesture from Joe and exclaimed sharply:
"Don't deny it! _I_ know what ye was like! Ye wasn't impudent, but ye looked at him as if ye saw through
him. Now listen and I'll lead ye somewhere! Ye run with riffraff, naggers, and even"Mr. Sheehan lifted a
forefinger solemnly and shook it at his auditor"and even with the Irish! Now I ask ye this: ye've had one
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 98
Page No 101
part of Canaan with ye from the start, MY part, that is; but the other's against ye; that part's PIKE, and it's the
rulin' part"
"Yes, Mike," said Joe, wearily. "In the spirit of things. I know."
"No, sir," cried the other. "That's the trouble: ye don't know. There's more in Canaan than ye've understood.
Listen to this: Why was the Tocsin's attack harder this morning than ever before? On yer soul didn't it sound
so bitter that it sounded desprit? Now why? It looked to me as if it had started to ruin ye, this time fer good
and all! Why? What have ye had to do with Martin Pike lately? Has the old wolf GOT to injure ye?" Mr.
Sheehan's voice rose and his eyes gleamed under bushy brows. "Think," he finished. "What's happened lately
to make him bite so hard?"
There were some faded roses on the desk, and as Joe's haggard eyes fell upon them the answer came. "What
makes you think Judge Pike isn't trustworthy?" he had asked Ariel, and her reply had been: "Nothing very
definite, unless it was his look when I told him that I meant to ask you to take charge of things for me."
He got slowly and amazedly to his feet. "You've got it!" he said.
"Ye see?" cried Mike Sheehan, slapping his thigh with a big hand. "On my soul I have the penetration! Ye
don't need to tell me one thing except this: I told ye I'd lead ye somewhere; haven't I kept me word?"
"Yes," said Joe.
"But I have the penetration!" exclaimed Mr. Sheehan. "Should I miss my guess if I said that ye think Pike
may be scared ye'll stumble on his track in some queer performances? Should I miss it?"
"No," said Joe. "You wouldn't miss it."
"Just one thing more." The redbearded man rose, mopping the inner band of his straw hat. "In the matter of
yer runnin' fer Mayor, now"
Joe, who had begun to pace up and down the room, made an impatient gesture. "Pshaw!" he interrupted; but
his friend stopped him with a hand laid on his arm.
"Don't be treatin' it as clean out of all possibility, Joe Louden. If ye do, it shows ye haven't sense to know that
nobody can say what way the wind's blowin' week after next. All the boys want ye; Louie Farbach wants ye,
and Louie has a big say. Who is it that doesn't want ye?"
"Canaan," said Joe.
"Hold up! It's Pike's Canaan ye mean. If ye git the nomination, ye'd be elected, wouldn't ye?"
"I couldn't be nominated."
"I ain't claimin' ye'd git Martin Pike's vote," returned Mr. Sheehan, sharply, "though I don't say it's
impossible. Ye've got to beat him, that's all. Ye've got to do to him what he's done to YOU, and what he's
tryin' to do now worse than ever before. Wellthere may be ways to do it; and if he tempts me enough, I
may fergit my troth and honor as a noble gentleman and help ye with a word ye'd never guess yerself."
"You've hinted at such mysteries before, Mike," Joe smiled. "I'd be glad to know what you mean, if there's
anything in them."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 99
Page No 102
"It may come to that," said the other, with some embarrassment. "It may come to that some day, if the old
wolf presses me too hard in the matter o' tryin' to git the little man across the street hanged by the neck and
yerself mobbed fer helpin' him! But today I'll say no more."
"Very well, Mike." Joe turned wearily to his desk. "I don't want you to break any promises."
Mr. Sheehan had gone to the door, but he paused on the threshold, and wiped his forehead again.
"And I don't want to break any," he said, "but if ever the time should come when I couldn't help it"he
lowered his voice to a hoarse but piercing whisper"that will be the devourin' angel's day fer Martin Pike!"
XVIII. IN THE HEAT OF THE DAY
It was a morning of the warmest week of midJuly, and Canaan lay inert and helpless beneath a broiling sun.
The few people who moved about the streets went languidly, keeping close to the wall on the shady side; the
women in thin white fabrics; the men, often coatless, carrying palmleaf fans, and replacing collars with
handkerchiefs. In the Courthouse yard the maple leaves, gray with blown dust and grown to great breadth,
drooped heavily, depressing the long, motionless branches with their weight, so low that the four or five
shabby idlers, upon the benches beneath, now and then flicked them sleepily with whittled sprigs. The doors
and windows of the stores stood open, displaying limp wares of trade, but few tokens of life; the clerks
hanging over dim counters as far as possible from the glare in front, gossiping fragmentarily, usually about
the Cory murder, and, anon, upon a subject suggested by the sight of an occasional pedestrian passing
perspiring by with scrooged eyelids and purpling skin. From street and sidewalk, transparent hot waves swam
up and danced themselves into nothing; while from the river bank, a halfmile away, came a sound hotter
than even the locust's midsummer rasp: the drone of a planingmill. A chance boy, lying prone in the grass of
the Courthouse yard, was annoyed by the relentless chant and lifted his head to mock it:
"AWREERAWREER! SHUT UP, CAN'T YOU?" The effort was exhausting: he relapsed and suffered
with increasing malice but in silence.
Abruptly there was a violent outbreak on the "National House" corner, as when a quiet farm house is
startled by some one's inadvertently bringing down all the tin from a shelf in the pantry. The loafers on the
benches turned hopefully, saw what it was, then closed their eyes, and slumped back into their former
positions. The outbreak subsided as suddenly as it had arisen: Colonel Flitcroft pulled Mr. Arp down into his
chair again, and it was all over.
Greater heat than that of these blazing days could not have kept one of the sages from attending the conclave
now. For the battle was on in Canaan: and here, upon the National House corner, under the shadow of the
west wall, it waxed even keener. Perhaps we may find full justification for calling what was happening a
battle in so far as we restrict the figure to apply to this one spot; else where, in the Canaan of the Tocsin, the
conflict was too onesided. The Tocsin had indeed tried the case of Happy Fear in advance, had convicted
and condemned, and every day grew more bitter. Nor was the urgent vigor of its attack without effect. Sleepy
as Main Street seemed in the heat, the town was incensed and roused to a tensity of feeling it had not known
since the civil war, when, on occasion, it had set out to hang half a dozen "Knights of the Golden Circle." Joe
had been hissed on the street many times since the inimical clerk had whistled at him. Probably
demonstrations of that sort would have continued had he remained in Canaan; but for almost a month he had
been absent and his office closed, its threshold gray with dust. There were people who believed that he had
run away again, this time never to return; among those who held to this opinion being Mrs. Louden and her
sister, Joe's stepaunt. Upon only one point was everybody agreed: that twelve men could not be found in the
county who could be so far persuaded and befuddled by Louden that they would dare to allow Happy Fear to
escape. The women of Canaan, incensed by the terrible circumstance of the case, as the Tocsin colored ita
man shot down in the act of begging his enemy's forgivenessclamored as loudly as the men: there was only
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 100
Page No 103
the difference that the latter vociferated for the hanging of Happy; their good ladies used the word
"punishment."
And yet, while the place rang with condemnation of the little man in the jail and his attorney, there were
voices, here and there, uplifted on the other side. People existed, it astonishingly appeared, who LIKED
Happy Fear. These were for the greater part obscure and even darkling in their lives, yet quite demonstrably
human beings, able to smile, suffer, leap, run, and to entertain fancies; even to have, according to their
degree, a certain rudimentary sense of right and wrong, in spite of which they strongly favored the prisoner's
acquittal. Precisely on that account, it was argued, an acquittal would outrage Canaan and lay it open to
untold danger: such people needed a lesson.
The Tocsin interviewed the town's great ones, printing their opinions of the heinousness of the crime and the
character of the defendant's lawyer. . . . "The Hon. P. J. Parrott, who so ably represented this county in the
Legislature some fourteen years ago, could scarcely restrain himself when approached by a reporter as to his
sentiments anent the repulsive deed. `I should like to know how long Canaan is going to put up with this sort
of business,' were his words. `I am a lawabiding citizen, and I have served faithfully, and with my full
endeavor and ability, to enact the laws and statutes of my State, but there is a point in my patience, I would
state, which lawbreakers and their lawyers may not safely pass. Of what use are our most solemn enactments,
I may even ask of what use is the Legislature itself, chosen by the will of the people, if they are to ruthlessly
be set aside by criminals and their shifty protectors? The blame should be put upon the lawyers who by tricks
enable such rascals to escape the rigors of the carefully enacted laws, the fruits of the Solon's labor, more
than upon the criminals themselves. In this case, if there is any miscarriage of justice, I will say here and now
that in my opinion the people of this county will be sorely tempted; and while I do not believe in lynchlaw,
yet if that should be the result it is my unalterable conviction that the vigilantes may well turn their attention
to the lawyersOR LAWYERwho bring about such miscarriage. I am sick of it.' "
The Tocsin did not print the interview it obtained from Louie Farbachthe same Louie Farbach who long
ago had owned a beersaloon with a little room behind the bar, where a shabby boy sometimes played
dominoes and "sevenup" with loafers: not quite the same Louie Farbach, however, in outward circumstance:
for he was now the brewer of Farbach Beer and making Canaan famous. His rise had been Teutonic and sure;
and he contributed onetwentieth of his income to the German Orphan Asylum and onetenth to his party's
campaign fund. The twentieth saved the orphans from the county, while the tithe gave the county to his party.
He occupied a kitchen chair, enjoying the society of some chickens in a wired enclosure behind the new
Italian villa he had erected in that part of Canaan where he would be most uncomfortable, and he looked
woodenly at the reporter when the latter put his question.
"Hef you any aguaintunce off Mitster Fear?" he inquired, in return, with no expression decipherable either
upon his Gargantuan face or in his heavily enfolded eyes.
"No, sir," replied the reporter, grinning. "I never ran across him."
"Dot iss a goot t'ing fer you," said Mr. Farbach, stonily. "He iss not a man peobles bedder try to run across. It
iss what Gory tried. Now Gory iss dead."
The reporter, slightly puzzled, lit a cigarette. "See here, Mr. Farbach," he urged, "I only want a word or two
about this thing; and you might give me a brief expression concerning that man Louden besides: just a hint of
what you think of his influence here, you know, and of the kind of sharp work he practises. Something like
that."
"I see," said the brewer, slowly. "Happy Fear I hef knowt for a goot many years. He iss a goot frient of mine."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 101
Page No 104
"What?"
"Choe Louten iss a bedder one," continued Mr. Farbach, turning again to stare at his chickens.
"Git owit."
"What?"
"Git owit," repeated the other, without passion, without anger, without any expression whatsoever. "Git
owit."
The reporter's prejudice against the German nation dated from that moment.
There were others, here and there, who were less selfcontained than the brewer. A farmhand struck a
fellow laborer in the harvestfield for speaking ill of Joe; and the unravelling of a strange street fight, one
day, disclosed as its cause a like resentment, on the part of a blind broommaker, engendered by a like
offence. The broommaker's companion, reading the Tocsin as the two walked together, had begun the
quarrel by remarking that Happy Fear ought to be hanged once for his own sake and twice more "to show up
that shyster Louden." Warm words followed, leading to extremely material conflict, in which, in spite of his
blindness, the broommaker had so much the best of it that he was removed from the triumphant attitude he
had assumed toward the person of his adversary, which was an admirable imitation of the dismounted St.
George and the Dragon, and conveyed to the jail. Keenest investigation failed to reveal anything oblique in
the man's record; to the astonishment of Canaan, there was nothing against him. He was blind and moderately
poor; but a respectable, hardworking artisan, and a pride to the church in which he was what has been called
an "active worker." It was discovered that his sensitiveness to his companion's attack on Joseph Louden arose
from the fact that Joe had obtained the acquittal of an imbecile sister of the blind man, a twothirdswitted
woman who had been charged with bigamy.
The Tocsin made what it could of this, and so dexterously that the wrath of Canaan was one farther jot
increased against the shyster. Ay, the town was hot, inside and out.
Let us consider the Forum. Was there ever before such a summer for the "National House" corner? How
voices first thundered there, then cracked and piped, is not to be rendered in all the tales of the fathers. One
who would make vivid the great doings must indeed "dip his brush in earthquake and eclipse"; even then he
could but picture the credible, and must despair of this: the silence of Eskew Arp. Not that Eskew held his
tongue, not that he was chary of speechno! O tempora, O mores! NO! But that he refused the subject in
hand, that he eschewed expression upon it and resolutely drove the argument in other directions, that he
achieved such superbly unArplike inconsistency; and with such rich material for his sardonic humors, not at
arm's length, not even so far as his fingertips, but beneath his very palms, he rejected it: this was the
impossible fact.
Eskewthere is no option but to declarewas no longer Eskew. It is the truth; since the morning when
Ariel Tabor came down from Joe's office, leaving her offering of white roses in that dingy, dusty, shady
place, Eskew had not been himself. His comrades observed it somewhat in a physical difference, one of those
alterations which may come upon men of his years suddenly, like a "sea change": his face was whiter, his
walk slower, his voice filed thinner; he creaked louder when he rose or sat. Old always, from his boyhood, he
had, in the turn of a hand, become aged. But such things come and such things go: after eighty there are ups
and downs; people fading away one week, bloom out pleasantly the next, and resiliency is not at all a patent
belonging to youth alone. The material change in Mr. Arp might have been thought little worth remarking.
What caused Peter Bradbury, Squire Buckalew, and the Colonel to shake their heads secretly to one another
and wonder if their good old friend's mind had not "begun to go" was something very different. To come
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 102
Page No 105
straight down to it: he not only abstained from all argument upon the "Cory Murder" and the case of Happy
Fear, refusing to discuss either in any terms or under any circumstances, but he also declined to speak of
Ariel Tabor or of Joseph Louden; or of their affairs, singular or plural, masculine, feminine, or neuter, or in
any declension Not a word, committal or noncommittal. None!
And his face, when he was silent, fell into sorrowful and troubled lines.
At first they merely marvelled. Then Squire Buckalew dared to tempt him. Eskew's faded eyes showed a blue
gleam, but he withstood, speaking of Babylon to the disparagement of Chicago. They sought to lead him into
what he evidently would not, employing many devices; but the old man was wily and often carried them far
afield by secret ways of his own. This hot morning he had done that thing: they were close upon him,
pressing him hard, when he roused that outburst which had stirred the idlers on the benches in the Court
house yard. Squire Buckalew (sidelong at the others but squarely at Eskew) had volunteered the information
that Cory was a reformed priest. Stung by the mystery of Eskew's silence, the Squire's imagination had
become magically gymnastic; and if anything under heaven could have lifted the veil, this was the thing. Mr.
Arp's reply may be reverenced.
"I consider," he said, deliberately, "that James G. Blaine's furrin policy was childish, and, what's more, I
never thought much of HIM!"
This outdefied Ajax, and every trace of the matter in hand went to the four winds. Eskew, like Rome, was
saved by a cackle, in which he joined, and a few moments later, as the bench loafers saw, was pulled down
into his seat by the Colonel.
The voices of the fathers fell to the pitch of ordinary discourse; the drowsy town was quiet again; the whine
of the planingmill boring its way through the sizzling air to every wakening ear. Far away, on a quiet street,
it sounded faintly, like the hum of a bee across a creek, and was drowned in the noise of men at work on the
old Tabor house. It seemed the only busy place in Canaan that day: the shade of the big beechtrees which
surrounded it affording some shelter from the destroying sun to the dripping laborers who were sawing,
hammering, painting, plumbing, papering, and ripping open old and new packingboxes. There were many
changes in the old house pleasantly in keeping with its simple character: airy enlargements now almost
completed so that some of the rooms were already finished, and stood, furnished and immaculate, ready for
tenancy.
In that which had been Roger Tabor's studio sat Ariel, alone. She had caused some chests and cases, stored
there, to be opened, and had taken out of them a few of Roger's canvases and set them along the wall. Tears
filled her eyes as she looked at them, seeing the tragedy of labor the old man had expended upon them; but
she felt the recompense: hard, tight, literal as they were, he had had his moment of joy in each of them before
he saw them coldly and knew the truth. And he had been given his years of Paris at last: and had seen "how
the other fellows did it."
A heavy foot strode through the hall, coming abruptly to a halt in the doorway, and turning, she discovered
Martin Pike, his big HenrytheEighth face flushed more with anger than with the heat. His hat was upon his
head, and remained there, nor did he offer any token or word of greeting whatever, but demanded to know
when the work upon the house had been begun.
"The second morning after my return," she answered.
"I want to know," he pursued, "why it was kept secret from me, and I want to know quick."
"Secret?" she echoed, with a wave of her hand to indicate the noise which the workmen were making.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 103
Page No 106
"Upon whose authority was it begun?"
"Mine. Who else could give it?"
"Look here," he said, advancing toward her, "don't you try to fool me! You haven't done all this by yourself.
Who hired these workmen?"
Remembering her first interview with him, she rose quickly before he could come near her. "Mr. Louden
made most of the arrangements for me," she replied, quietly, "before he went away. He will take charge of
everything when he returns. You haven't forgotten that I told you I intended to place my affairs in his hands?"
He had started forward, but at this he stopped and stared at her inarticulately.
"You remember?" she said, her hands resting negligently upon the back of the chair. "Surely you remember?"
She was not in the least afraid of him, but coolly watchful of him. This had been her habit with him since her
return. She had seen little of him, except at table, when he was usually grimly laconic, though now and then
she would hear him joking heavily with Sam Warden in the yard, or, with evidently humorous intent,
groaning at Mamie over Eugene's health; but it had not escaped Ariel that he was, on his part, watchful of
herself, and upon his guard with a wariness in which she was sometimes surprised to believe that she saw an
almost haggard apprehension.
He did not answer her question, and it seemed to her, as she continued steadily to meet his hot eyes, that he
was trying to hold himself under some measure of control; and a vain effort it proved.
"You go back to my house!" he burst out, shouting hoarsely. "You get back there! You stay there!"
"No," she said, moving between him and the door. "Mamie and I are going for a drive."
"You go back to my house!" He followed her, waving an arm fiercely at her. "Don't you come around here
trying to run over me! You talk about your `affairs'! All you've got on earth is this twoforanickel old
shack over your head and a bushelbasket of distillery stock that you can sell by the pound for old paper!" He
threw the words in her face, the bullbass voice seamed and cracked with falsetto. "Old paper, old rags, old
iron, bottles, old clothes! You talk about your affairs! Who are you? Rothschild? You haven't GOT any
affairs!"
Not a look, not a word, not a motion of his escaped her in all the fury of sound and gesture in which he
seemed fairly to envelop himself; least of all did that shaking of histhe quivering of jaw and temple, the
tumultuous agitation of his hands evade her watchfulness.
"When did you find this out?" she said, very quickly. "After you became administrator?"
He struck the back of the chair she had vacated a vicious blow with his open hand. "No, you spendthrift! All
there was TO your grandfather when you buried him was a basket full of distillery stock, I tell you! Old
paper! Can't you hear me? Old paper, old rags"
"You have sent me the same income," she lifted her voice to interrupt; "you have made the same quarterly
payments since his death that you made before. If you knew, why did you do that?"
He had been shouting at her with the frantic and incredulous exasperation of an intolerant man utterly unused
to opposition; his face empurpled, his forehead dripping, and his hands ruthlessly pounding the back of the
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 104
Page No 107
chair; but this straight question stripped him suddenly of gesture and left him standing limp and still before
her, pale splotches beginning to show on his hot cheeks.
"If you knew, why did you do it?" she repeated. "You wrote me that my income was from dividends, and I
knew and thought nothing about it; but if the stock which came to me was worthless, how could it pay
dividends?"
"It did not," he answered, huskily. "That distillery stock, I tell you, isn't worth the matches to burn it."
"But there has been no difference in my income," she persisted, steadily. "Why? Can you explain that to me?"
"Yes, I can," he replied, and it seemed to her that he spoke with a pallid and bitter desperation, like a man
driven to the wall. "I can if you think you want to know."
"I do."
"I sent it."
"Do you mean from you own"
"I mean it was my own money."
She had not taken her eyes from his, which met hers straightly and angrily; and at this she leaned forward,
gazing at him with profound scrutiny.
"Why did you send it?" she asked.
"Charity," he answered, after palpable hesitation.
Her eyes widened and she leaned back against the lintel of the door, staring at him incredulously. "Charity!"
she echoed, in a whisper.
Perhaps he mistook her amazement at his performance for dismay caused by the sense of her own position,
for, as she seemed to weaken before him, the strength of his own habit of dominance came back to him.
"Charity, madam!" he broke out, shouting intolerably. "Charity, d'ye hear? I was a friend of the man that
made the money you and your grandfather squandered; I was a friend of Jonas Tabor, I say! That's why I was
willing to support you for a year and over, rather than let a niece of his suffer."
"`Suffer'!" she cried. "`Support'! You sent me a hundred thousand francs!"
The white splotches which had mottled Martin Pike's face disappeared as if they had been suddenly splashed
with hot red. "You go back to my house," he said. "What I sent you only shows the extent of my"
"Effrontery!" The word rang through the whole house, so loudly and clearly did she strike it, rang in his ears
till it stung like a castigation. It was ominous, portentous of justice and of disaster. There was more than
doubt of him in it: there was conviction.
He fell back from this word; and when he again advanced, Ariel had left the house. She had turned the next
corner before he came out of the gate; and as he passed his own home on his way downtown, he saw her
white dress mingling with his daughter's near the horseblock beside the fire, where the two, with their arms
about each other, stood waiting for Sam Warden and the open summer carriage.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 105
Page No 108
Judge Pike walked on, the white splotches reappearing like a pale rash upon his face. A yellow butterfly
zigzagged before him, kneehigh, across the sidewalk. He raised his foot and half kicked at it.
XIX. ESKEW ARP
As the Judge continued his walk down Main Street, he wished profoundly that the butterfly (which exhibited
no annoyance) had been of greater bulk and more approachable; and it was the evil fortune of Joe's mongrel
to encounter him in the sinister humor of such a wish unfulfilled. Respectability dwelt at Beaver Beach under
the care of Mr. Sheehan until his master should return; and Sheehan was kind; but the small dog found the
world lonely and time long without Joe. He had grown more and more restless, and at last, this hot morning,
having managed to evade the eye of all concerned in his keeping, made off unobtrusively, partly by
swimming, and reaching the road, cantered into town, his ears erect with anxiety. Bent upon reaching the
familiar office, he passed the grocery from the doorway of which the pimply cheeked clerk had thrown a bad
potato at him a month before. The same clerk had just laid down the Tocsin as Respectability went by, and,
inspired to great deeds in behalf of justice and his native city, he rushed to the door, lavishly seized, this time,
a perfectly good potato, and hurled it with a result which ecstasized him, for it took the mongrel fairly aside
the head, which it matched in size.
The luckless Respectability's purpose to reach Joe's stairway had been entirely definite, but upon this violence
he forgot it momentarily. It is not easy to keep things in mind when one is violently smitten on mouth, nose,
cheek, eye, and ear by a missile large enough to strike them simultaneously. Yelping and half blinded, he
deflected to cross Main Street. Judge Pike had elected to cross in the opposite direction, and the two met in
the middle of the street.
The encounter was miraculously fitted to the Judge's need: here was no butterfly, but a solid body, light
withal, a wet, muddy, and dusty yellow dog, eminently kickable. The man was heavily built about the legs,
and the vigor of what he did may have been additionally inspired by his recognition of the mongrel as Joe
Louden's. The impact of his toe upon the little runner's side was momentous, and the latter rose into the air.
The Judge hopped, as one hops who, unshod in the night, discovers an unexpected chair. Let us be reconciled
to his pain and not reproach the gods with it,for two of his unintending adversary's ribs were cracked.
The dog, thus again deflected, retraced his tracks, shrieking distractedly, and, by one of those ironical twists
which Karma reserves for the tails of the fated, dived for blind safety into the store commanded by the
ecstatic and inimical clerk. There were shouts; the sleepy Square beginning to wake up: the boy who had
mocked the planingmill got to his feet, calling upon his fellows; the bench loafers strolled to the street; the
aged men stirred and rose from their chairs; faces appeared in the open windows of offices; sales ladies and
gentlemen came to the doorways of the tradingplaces; so that when Respectability emerged from the
grocery he had a notable audience for the scene he enacted with a brass dinnerbell tied to his tail.
Another potato, flung by the pimpled, uproarious, prodigal clerk, added to the impetus of his flight. A shower
of pebbles from the hands of exhilarated boys dented the soft asphalt about him; the hideous clamor of the
pursuing bell increased as he turned the next corner, running distractedly. The dead town had come to life,
and its inhabitants gladly risked the dangerous heat in the interests of sport, whereby it was a merry chase the
little dog led around the block, For thus some destructive instinct drove him; he could not stop with the
unappeasable Terror clanging at his heels and the increasing crowd yelling in pursuit; but he turned to the left
at each corner, and thus came back to pass Joe's stairway again, unable to pause there or anywhere, unable to
do anything except to continue his hapless flight, poor meteor.
Round the block he went once more, and still no chance at that empty stairway where, perhaps, he thought,
there might be succor and safety. Blood was upon his side where Martin Pike's boot had crashed, foam and
blood hung upon his jaws and lolling tongue. He ran desperately, keeping to the middle of the street, and, not
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 106
Page No 109
howling, set himself despairingly to outstrip the Terror. The mob, disdaining the sun superbly, pursued as
closely as it could, throwing bricks and rocks at him, striking at him with clubs and sticks. Happy Fear,
playing "tictactoe," right hand against left, in his cell, heard the uproar, made out something of what was
happening, and, though unaware that it was a friend whose life was sought, discovered a similarity to his own
case, and prayed to his dim gods that the quarry might get away.
"MAD DOG!" they yelled. "MAD DOG!" And there were some who cried, "JOE LOUDEN'S DOG!" that
being equally as exciting and explanatory.
Three times round, and still the little fugitive maintained a lead. A grayhelmeted policeman, a big fellow,
had joined the pursuit. He had children at home who might be playing in the street, and the thought of what
might happen to them if the mad dog should head that way resolved him to be cool and steady. He was falling
behind, so he stopped on the corner, trusting that Respectability would come round again. He was right, and
the flying brownish thing streaked along Main Street, passing the beloved stairway for the fourth time. The
policeman lifted his revolver, fired twice, missed once, but caught him with the second shot in a forepaw,
clipping off a fifth toe, one of the small claws that grow above the foot and are always in trouble. This did not
stop him; but the policeman, afraid to risk another shot because of the crowd, waited for him to come again;
and many others, seeing the hopeless circuit the mongrel followed, did likewise, armed with bricks and clubs.
Among them was the pimply clerk, who had been inspired to commandeer a pitchfork from a hardware store.
When the fifth round came, Respectability's race was run. He turned into Main Street at a broken speed,
limping, parched, voiceless, flecked with blood and foam, snapping feebly at the showering rocks, but still
indomitably a little ahead of the hunt. There was no yelp left in himhe was too thoroughly winded for
that,but in his brilliant and despairing eyes shone the agony of a cry louder than the tongue of a dog could
utter: "O master! O all the god I know! Where are you in my mortal need?"
Now indeed he had a gauntlet to run; for the street was lined with those who awaited him, while the pursuit
grew closer behind. A number of the hardiest stood squarely in his path, and he hesitated for a second, which
gave the opportunity for a surer aim, and many missiles struck him. "Let him have it now, officer," said
Eugene Bantry, standing with Judge Pike at the policeman's elbow. "There's your chance."
But before the revolver could be discharged, Respectability had begun to run again, hobbling on three legs
and dodging feebly. A heavy stone struck him on the shoulder and he turned across the street, making for the
"National House" corner, where the joyful clerk brandished his pitchfork. Going slowly, he almost touched
the pimply one as he passed, and the clerk, already rehearsing in his mind the honors which should follow the
brave stroke, raised the tines above the little dog's head for the coup de grace. They did not descend, and the
daring youth failed of fame as the laurel almost embraced his brows. A hickory walking stick was thrust
between his legs; and he, expecting to strike, received a blow upon the temple sufficient for his present
undoing and bedazzlement. He went over backwards, and the pitchfork (not the thing to hold poised on high
when one is knocked down) fell with the force he had intended for Respectability upon his own shin.
A train had pulled into the station, and a tired, travelworn young man, descending from a sleeper, walked
rapidly up the street to learn the occasion of what appeared to be a riot. When he was close enough to
understand its nature, he dropped his bag and came on at top speed, shouting loudly to the battered mongrel,
who tried with his remaining strength to leap toward him through a cordon of kicking legs, while Eugene
Bantry again called to the policeman to fire.
"If he does, damn you, I'll kill him!" Joe saw the revolver raised; and then, Eugene being in his way, he ran
fulltilt into his stepbrother with all his force, sending him to earth, and went on literally over him as he lay
prone upon the asphalt, that being the shortest way to Respectability. The next instant the mongrel was in his
master's arms and weakly licking his hands.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 107
Page No 110
But it was Eskew Arp who had saved the little dog; for it was his stick which had tripped the clerk, and his
hand which had struck him down. All his bodily strength had departed in that effort, but he staggered out into
the street toward Joe.
"Joe Louden!" called the veteran, in a loud voice. "Joe Louden!" and suddenly reeled. The Colonel and
Squire Buckalew were making their way toward him, but Joe, holding the dog to his breast with one arm,
threw the other about Eskew.
"It's a townit's a town"the old fellow flung himself free from the supporting arm"it's a town you
couldn't even trust a yellow dog to!"
He sank back upon Joe's shoulder, speechless. An open carriage had driven through the crowd, the colored
driver urged by two ladies upon the back seat, and Martin Pike saw it stop by the group in the middle of the
street where Joe stood, the wounded dog held to his breast by one arm, the old man, white and half fainting,
supported by the other. Martin Pike saw this and more; he saw Ariel Tabor and his own daughter leaning
from the carriage, the arms of both pityingly extended to Joe Louden and his two burdens, while the stunned
and silly crowd stood round them staring, clouds of dust settling down upon them through the hot air.
XX. THREE ARE ENLISTED
Now in that blazing noon Canaan looked upon a strange sight: an open carriage whirling through Main Street
behind two galloping bays; upon the back seat a ghostly white old man with closed eyes, supported by two
pale ladies, his head upon the shoulder of the taller; while beside the driver, a young man whose coat and
hands were bloody, worked over the hurts of an injured dog. Sam Warden's whip sang across the horses;
lather gathered on their flanks, and Ariel's voice steadily urged on the pace: "Quicker, Sam, if you can." For
there was little breath left in the body of Eskew Arp.
Mamie, almost as white as the old man, was silent; but she had not hesitated in her daring, now that she had
been taught to dare; she had not come to be Ariel's friend and honest follower for nothing; and it was Mamie
who had cried to Joe to lift Eskew into the carriage. "You must come too," she said. "We will need you." And
so it came to pass that under the eyes of Canaan Joe Louden rode in Judge Pike's carriage at the bidding of
Judge Pike's daughter.
Toward Ariel's own house they sped with the stricken octogenarian, for he was "alone in the world," and she
would not take him to the cottage where he had lived for many years by himself, a bleak little house, a
derelict of the "early days" left stranded far down in the town between a woollenmill and the waterworks.
The workmen were beginning their dinners under the big trees, but as Sam Warden drew in the lathered
horses at the gate, they set down their tin buckets hastily and ran to help Joe lift the old man out. Carefully
they bore him into the house and laid him upon a bed in one of the finished rooms. He did not speak or move
and the workmen uncovered their heads as they went out, but Joe knew that they were mistaken. "It's all
right, Mr. Arp," he said, as Ariel knelt by the bed with water and restoratives. "It's all right. Don't you worry."
Then the veteran's lips twitched, and though his eyes remained closed, Joe saw that Eskew understood, for he
gasped, feebly: "Positivelyno freeseats!"
To Mrs. Louden, sewing at an upstairs window, the sight of her stepson descending from Judge Pike's
carriage was sufficiently startling, but when she saw Mamie Pike take Respectability from his master's arms
and carry him tenderly indoors, while Joe and Ariel occupied themselves with Mr. Arp, the good lady sprang
to her feet as if she had been stung, regardlessly sending her workbasket and its contents scattering over the
floor, and ran down the stairs three steps at a time.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 108
Page No 111
At the front door she met her husband, entering for his dinner, and she leaped at him. Had he seen? What was
it? What had happened?
Mr. Louden rubbed his chinbeard, indulging himself in a pause which was like to prove fatal to his
companion, finally vouchsafing the information that the doctor's buggy was just turning the corner; Eskew
Arp had suffered a "stroke," it was said, and, in Louden's opinion, was a mighty sick man. His spouse replied
in no uncertain terms that she had seen quite that much for herself, urging him to continue, which he did with
a deliberation that caused her to recall their weddingday with a gust of passionate selfreproach. Presently
he managed to interrupt, reminding her that her dining room windows commanded as comprehensive a view
of the next house as did the front steps, and after a time her housewifely duty so far prevailed over her
indignation at the man's unwholesome stolidity that she followed him down the hall to preside over the meal,
not, however, to partake largely of it herself.
Mr. Louden had no information of Eugene's mishap, nor had Mrs. Louden any suspicion that all was not well
with the young man, and, hearing him enter the front door, she called to him that his dinner was waiting.
Eugene, however, made no reply and went upstairs to his own apartment without coming into the
diningroom.
A small crowd, neighboring children, servants, and negroes, had gathered about Ariel's gate, and Mrs.
Louden watched the workingmen disperse this assembly, gather up their tools, and depart; then Mamie
came out of the house, and, bowing sadly to three old men who were entering the gate as she left it, stepped
into her carriage and drove away. The newcomers, Colonel Flitcroft, Squire Buckalew, and Peter Bradbury,
glanced at the doctor's buggy, shook their heads at one another, and slowly went up to the porch, where Joe
met them. Mrs. Louden uttered a sharp exclamation, for the Colonel shook hands with her stepson.
Perhaps Flitcroft himself was surprised; he had offered his hand almost unconsciously, and the greeting was
embarrassed and perfunctory; but his two companions, each in turn, gravely followed his lead, and Joe's set
face flushed a little. It was the first time in many years that men of their kind in Canaan had offered him this
salutation.
"He wouldn't let me send for you," he told them. "He said he knew you'd be here soon without that." And he
led the way to Eskew's bedside.
Joe and the doctor had undressed the old man, and had put him into nightgear of Roger Tabor's, taken from
an antique chest; it was soft and yellow and much more like color than the face above it, for the white hair on
the pillow was not whiter than that. Yet there was a strange youthfulness in the eyes of Eskew; an eerie,
inexplicable, luminous, LIVE look; the thin cheeks seemed fuller than they had been for years; and though
the heavier lines of age and sorrow could be seen, they appeared to have been half erased. He lay not in
sunshine, but in clear light; the windows were open, the curtains restrained, for he had asked them not to
darken the room.
The doctor was whispering in a doctor's way to Ariel at the end of the room opposite the bed, when the three
old fellows came in. None of them spoke immediately, and though all three cleared their throats with what
they meant for casual cheerfulness, to indicate that the situation was not at all extraordinary or depressing, it
was to be seen that the Colonel's chin trembled under his mustache, and his comrades showed similar small
and unwilling signs of emotion.
Eskew spoke first. "Well, boys?" he said, and smiled.
That seemed to make it more difficult for the others; the three white heads bent silently over the fourth upon
the pillow; and Ariel saw waveringly, for her eyes suddenly filled, that the Colonel laid his unsteady hand
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 109
Page No 112
upon Eskew's, which was outside the coverlet.
"It'sit's not," said the old soldier, gently "it's not onon both sides, is it, Eskew?"
Mr. Arp moved his hand slightly in answer. "It ain't paralysis," he said. "They call it `shock and exhaustion';
but it's more than that. It's just my time. I've heard the call. We've all been slidin' on thin ice this long
timeand it's broke under me"
"Eskew, Eskew!" remonstrated Peter Bradbury. "You'd oughtn't to talk thataway! You only kind of
overdone a littleheat o' the day, too, and"
"Peter," interrupted the sick man, with feeble asperity, "did you ever manage to fool me in your life?"
"No, Eskew."
"Well, you're not doin' it now!"
Two tears suddenly loosed themselves from Squire Buckalew's eyelids, despite his hard endeavor to wink
them away, and he turned from the bed too late to conceal what had happened. "There ain't any call to feel
bad," said Eskew. "It might have happened any timein the night, maybeat my houseand all
alonebut here's Airie Tabor brought me to her own home and takin' care of me. I couldn't ask any better
way to go, could I?"
"I don't know what we'll do," stammered the Colonel, "if youyou talk about goin' away from us, Eskew.
Wewe couldn't get along"
"Well, sir, I'm almost kind of glad to think," Mr. Arp murmured, between short struggles for breath, "that it 'll
bequieteron the"National House" corner!"
A moment later he called the doctor faintly and asked for a restorative. "There," he said, in a stronger voice
and with a gleam of satisfaction in the vindication of his belief that he was dying. "I was almost gone then.
_I_ know!" He lay panting for a moment, then spoke the name of Joe Louden.
Joe came quickly to the bedside.
"I want you to shake hands with the Colonel and Peter and Buckalew.
"We did," answered the Colonel, infinitely surprised and troubled. "We shook hands outside before we came
in."
"Do it again," said Eskew. "I want to see you."
And Joe, making shift to smile, was suddenly blinded, so that he could not see the wrinkled hands extended
to him, and was fain to grope for them.
"God knows why we didn't all take his hand long ago," said Eskew Arp. "I didn't because I was stubborn. I
hated to admit that the argument was against me. I acknowledge it now before him and before youand I
want the word of it CARRIED!"
"It's all right, Mr. Arp," began Joe, tremulously. "You mustn't"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 110
Page No 113
"Hark to me"the old man's voice lifted higher: "If you'd ever whimpered, or give back talk, or broke out
the wrong way, it would of been different. But you never did. I've watched you and I know; and you've just
gone your own way alone, with the town against you because you got a bad name as a boy, and once we'd
given you that, everything you did or didn't do, we had to give you a blacker one. Now it's time some one
stood by you! Airie Tabor 'll do that with all her soul and body. She told me once I thought a good deal of
you. She knew! But I want these three old friends of mine to do it, too. I was boys with them and they'll do it,
I think. They've even stood up fer you against me, sometimes, but mostly fer the sake of the argument, I
reckon; but now they must do it when there's more to stand against than just my talk. They saw it all
todaythe meanest thing I ever knew! I could of stood it all except that!" Before they could prevent him he
had struggled half upright in bed, lifting a clinched fist at the town beyond the windows. "But, by God! when
they got so low down they tried to kill your dog"
He fell back, choking, in Joe's arms, and the physician bent over him, but Eskew was not gone, and Ariel,
upon the other side of the room, could hear him whispering again for the restorative. She brought it, and
when he had taken it, went quickly outofdoors to the side yard.
She sat upon a workman's bench under the big trees, hidden from the street shrubbery, and breathing deeply
of the shaded air, began to cry quietly. Through the windows came the quavering voice of the old man, lifted
again, insistent, a little querulous, but determined. Responses sounded, intermittently, from the Colonel, from
Peter, and from Buckalew, and now and then a sorrowful, yet almost humorous, protest from Joe; and so she
made out that the veteran swore his three comrades to friendship with Joseph Louden, to lend him their
countenance in all matters, to stand by him in weal and woe, to speak only good of him and defend him in the
town of Canaan. Thus did Eskew Arp on the verge of parting this life render justice.
The gate clicked, and Ariel saw Eugene approaching through the shrubbery. One of his hands was bandaged,
a thin strip of courtplaster crossed his forehead from his left eyebrow to his hair, and his thin and agitated
face showed several light scratches.
"I saw you come out," he said. "I've been waiting to speak to you."
"The doctor told us to let him have his way in whatever he might ask." Ariel wiped her eyes. "I'm afraid that
means"
"I didn't come to talk about Eskew Arp," interrupted Eugene. "I'm not laboring under any anxiety about him.
You needn't be afraid; he's too sour to accept his conge so readily."
"Please lower your voice," she said, rising quickly and moving away from him toward the house; but, as he
followed, insisting sharply that he must speak with her, she walked out of earshot of the windows, and
stopping, turned toward him.
"Very well," she said. "Is it a message from Mamie?"
At this he faltered and hung fire.
"Have you been to see her?" she continued.
"I am anxious to know if her goodness and bravery caused her anyany discomfort at home."
"You may set your mind at rest about that," returned Eugene. "I was there when the Judge came home to
dinner. I suppose you fear he may have been rough with her for taking my step brother into the carriage. He
was not. On the contrary, he spoke very quietly to her, and went on out toward the stables. But I haven't come
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 111
Page No 114
to you to talk of Judge Pike, either!"
"No," said Ariel. "I don't care particularly to hear of him, but of Mamie."
"Nor of her, either!" he broke out. "I want to talk of you!"
There was not mistaking him; no possibility of misunderstanding the real passion that shook him, and her
startled eyes betrayed her comprehension.
"Yes, I see you understand," he cried, bitterly. "That's because you've seen others the same way. God help
me," he went on, striking his forehead with his open hand, "that young fool of a Bradbury told me you
refused him only yesterday! He was proud of even rejection from you! And there's Norbertand half a
dozen others, perhaps, already, since you've been here." He flung out his arms in ludicrous, savage despair.
"And here am I"
"Ah yes," she cut him off, "it is of yourself that you want to speak, after allnot of me!"
"Look here," he vociferated; "are you going to marry that Joe Louden? I want to know whether you are or
not. He gave me thisand this to day!" He touched his bandaged hand and plastered forehead. "He ran into
meover mefor nothing, when I was not on my guard; struck me downstamped on me"
She turned upon him, cheeks aflame, eyes sparkling and dry.
"Mr. Bantry," she cried, "he did a good thing! And now I want you to go home. I want you to go home and
try if you can discover anything in yourself that is worthy of Mamie and of what she showed herself to be this
morning! If you can, you will have found something that I could like!"
She went rapidly toward the house, and he was senseless enough to follow, babbling: "What do you think I'm
made of? You trample on meas he did! I can't bear everything; I tell you"
But she lifted her hand with such imperious will that he stopped short. Then, through the window of the
sickroom cameclearly the querulous voice:
"I tell you it was; I heard him speak just now out there in the yard, that noaccount stepbrother of Joe's!
What if he IS a hired hand on the Tocsin? He'd better give up his job and quit, than do what he's done to help
make the town think hard of Joe. And what IS he? Why, he's worse than Cory. When that Claudine Fear first
came here, 'Gene Bantry was hangin' around her himself. Joe knew it and he'd never tell, but I will. I saw 'em
buggyridin' out near Beaver Beach and she slapped his face fer him. It ought to be TOLD!"
"I didn't know that Joe knewthat!" Eugene stammered huskily. "It wasit wasa long time ago"
"If you understood Joe," she said, in a low voice, "you would know that before these men leave this house, he
will have their promise never to tell."
His eyes fell miserably, then lifted again; but in her clear and unbearable gaze there shone such a flame of
scorn as he could not endure to look upon. For the first time in his life he saw a true light upon himself, and
though the vision was darkling, the revelation was complete.
"Heaven pity you!" she whispered.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 112
Page No 115
Eugene found himself alone, and stumbled away, his glance not lifted. He passed his own home without
looking up, and did not see his mother beckoning frantically from a window. She ran to the door and called
him. He did not hear her, but went on toward the Tocsin office with his head still bent.
XXI. NORBERT WAITS FOR JOE:
There was meat for gossip a plenty in Canaan that afternoon and evening; there were rumors that ran from
kitchen to parlor, and rumors that ran from parlor to kitchen; speculations that detained housewives in talk
across front gates; wonderings that held cooks in converse over shadeless back fences in spite of the heat; and
canards that brought Main Street clerks running to the shop doors to stare up and down the sidewalks. Out of
the confusion of report, the judicious were able by evenfall to extract a fair history of this day of revolution.
There remained no doubt that Joe Louden was in attendance at the deathbed of Eskew Arp, and somehow it
came to be known that Colonel Flitcroft, Squire Buckalew, and Peter Bradbury had shaken hands with Joe
and declared themselves his friends. There were those (particularly among the relatives of the hoary trio) who
expressed the opinion that the Colonel and his comrades were too old to be responsible and a commission
ought to sit on them; nevertheless, some echoes of Eskew's last "argument" to the conclave had sounded in
the town and were not wholly without effect.
Everywhere there was a nipping curiosity to learn how Judge Pike had "taken" the strange performance of his
daughter, and the eager were much disappointed when it was truthfully reported that he had done and said
very little. He had merely discharged both Sam Warden and Sam's wife from his service, the mild manner of
the dismissal almost unnerving Mr. Warden, although he was fully prepared for birdshot; and the couple had
found immediate employment in the service of Ariel Tabor.
Those who humanly felt the Judge's behavior to be a trifle flat and unsensational were recompensed late in
the afternoon when it became known that Eugene Bantry had resigned his position on the Tocsin. His reason
for severing his connection was dumfounding; he had written a formal letter to the Judge and repeated the
gist of it to his associates in the office and acquaintances upon the street. He declared that he no longer
sympathized with the attitude of the Tocsin toward his step brother, and regretted that he had previously
assisted in emphasizing the paper's hostility to Joe, particularly in the matter of the approaching murder trial.
This being the case, he felt that his effectiveness in the service of the paper had ceased, and he must, in
justice to the owner, resign.
"Well, I'm damned!" was the simple comment of the elder Louden when his stepson sought him out at the
factory and repeated this statement to him.
"So am I, I think," said Eugene, wanly. "Good bye. I'm going now to see mother, but I'll be gone before you
come home."
"Gone where?"
"Just away. I don't know where," Eugene answered from the door. "I couldn't live here any longer. I"
"You've been drinking," said Mr. Louden, inspired. "You'd better not let Mamie Pike see you."
Eugene laughed desolately. "I don't mean to. I shall write to her. Goodbye," he said, and was gone before
Mr. Louden could restore enough order out of the chaos in his mind to stop him.
Thus Mrs. Louden's long wait at the window was tragically rewarded, and she became an unhappy actor in
Canaan's drama of that day. Other ladies attended at other windows, or near their front doors, throughout the
afternoon: the families of the three patriarchs awaiting their return, as the time drew on, with something akin
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 113
Page No 116
to frenzy. Mrs. Flitcroft (a lady of temper), whose rheumatism confined her to a chair, had her grandson
wheel her out upon the porch, and, as the dusk fell and she finally saw her husband coming at a laggard pace,
leaning upon his cane, his chin sunk on his breast, she frankly told Norbert that although she had lived with
that man more than fiftyseven years, she would never be able to understand him. She repeated this with
genuine symptoms of hysteria when she discovered that the Colonel had not come straight from the Tabor
house, but had stopped two hours at Peter Bradbury's to "talk it over."
One item of his recital, while sufficiently startling to his wife, had a remarkable effect upon his grandson.
This was the information that Ariel Tabor's fortune no longer existed.
"What's that?" cried Norbert, starting to his feet. "What are you talking about?"
"It's true," said the Colonel, deliberately. "She told me so herself. Eskew had dropped off into a sort of
dozemore like a stupor, perhaps,and we all went into Roger's old studio, except Louden and the doctor,
and while we were there, talkin', one of Pike's clerks came with a basket full of tin boxes and packages of
papers and talked to Miss Tabor at the door and went away. Then old Peter blundered out and asked her
pointblank what it was, and she said it was her estate, almost everything she had, except the house.
Buckalew, tryin' to make a joke, said he'd be willin' to swap HIS house and lot for the basket, and she
laughed and told him she thought he'd be sorry; that all there was, to speak of, was a pile of distillery
stock" "What?" repeated Norbert, incredulously.
"Yes. It was the truth," said the Colonel, solemnly. "I saw it myself: blocks and blocks of stock in that
distillery trust that went up higher'n a kite last year. Roger had put all of Jonas's good money"
"Not into that!" shouted Norbert, uncontrollably excited.
"Yes, he did. I tell you I saw it!"
"I tell you he didn't. He owned Granger Gas, worth more today than it ever was! Pike was Roger's
attorneyinfact and bought it for him before the old man died. The check went through my hands. You don't
think I'd forget as big a check as that, do you, even if it was more than a year ago? Or how it was signed and
who made out to? It was Martin Pike that got caught with distillery stock. He speculated once too often!"
"No, you're wrong," persisted the Colonel. "I tell you I saw it myself."
"Then you're blind," returned his grandson, disrespectfully; "you're blind or elseor else" He paused,
openmouthed, a look of wonder struggling its way to expression upon him, gradually conquering every
knobby outpost of his countenance. He struck his fat hands together. "Where's Joe Louden?" he asked,
sharply. "I want to see him. Did you leave him at Miss Tabor's?"
"He's goin' to sit up with Eskew. What do you want of him?"
"I should say you better ask that!" Mrs. Flitcroft began, shrilly. "It's enough, I guess, for one of this family to
go runnin' after him and shakin' hands with him and Heaven knows what not! NORBERT FLITCROFT!"
But Norbert jumped from the porch, ruthlessly crossed his grandmother's geraniumbed, and, making off at
as sharp a pace as his architecture permitted, within ten minutes opened Ariel's gate.
Sam Warden came forward to meet him.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 114
Page No 117
"Don't ring, please, suh," said Sam. "Dey sot me out heah to tell inquirin' frien's dat po' ole Mist' Arp mighty
low."
"I want to see Mr. Louden," returned Norbert. "I want to see him immediately."
"I don' reckon he kin come out yit," Sam said, in a low tone. "But I kin go in an' ast 'em."
He stepped softly within, leaving Norbert waiting, and went to the door of the sickroom. The door was
open, the room brightly lighted, as Eskew had commanded when, a little earlier, he awoke.
Joe and Ariel were alone with him, leaning toward him with such white anxiety that the colored man needed
no warning to make him remain silent in the hallway. The veteran was speaking and his voice was very weak,
seeming to come from a great distance.
"It's mighty funny, but I feel like I used to when I was a little boy. I reckon I'm kind of scaredafter all.
Airie Tabor,are youhere?"
"Yes, Mr. Arp."
"I thoughtsobut II don't see very well lately. Iwantedtoknowto know"
"Yesto know?" She knelt close beside him.
"It's kind offoolish," he whispered. "I just wanted to know if you was still here. Itdon't seem so
lonesome now that I know."
She put her arm lightly about him and he smiled and was silent for a time. Then he struggled to rise upon his
elbow, and they lifted him a little.
"It's hard to breathe," gasped the old man. "I'm pretty nearthe big road. Joe Louden"
"Yes?"
"You'd have beenwillingwilling to change places with mejust nowwhen Airie"
Joe laid his hand on his, and Eskew smiled again. "I thought so! And, Joe"
"Yes?"
"You alwaysalways had thethe best of that joke between us. Do youyou suppose they charge
admissionup there?" His eyes were lifted. "Do you suppose you've got toto show your good deeds to git
in?" The answering whisper was almost as faint as the old man's.
"No," panted Eskew, "nobody knows. But I hopeI do hopethey'll have some free seats. It's amighty
poor showwe'llall haveif theydon't!"
He sighed peacefully, his head grew heavier on Joe's arm; and the young man set his hand gently upon the
unseeing eyes. Ariel did not rise from where she knelt, but looked up at him when, a little later, he lifted his
hand.
"Yes," said Joe, "you can cry now."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 115
Page No 118
XXII. MR. SHEEHAN SPEAKS
Joe helped to carry what was mortal of Eskew from Ariel's house to its final abidingplace. With him, in that
task, were Buckalew, Bradbury, the Colonel, and the grandsons of the two latter, and Mrs. Louden drew in
her skirts grimly as her stepson passed her in the mournful procession through the hall. Her eyes were red
with weeping (not for Eskew), but not so red as those of Mamie Pike, who stood beside her.
On the way to the cemetery, Joe and Ariel were together in a carriage with Buckalew and the minister who
had read the service, a dark, pleasant eyed young man;and the Squire, after being almost overcome
during the ceremony, experienced a natural reaction, talking cheerfully throughout the long drive. He
recounted many anecdotes of Eskew, chuckling over most of them, though filled with wonder by a
coincidence which he and Flitcroft had discovered; the Colonel had recently been made the custodian of his
old friend's will, and it had been opened the day before the funeral. Eskew had left everything he
possessedwith the regret that it was so littleto Joe.
"But the queer thing about it," said the Squire, addressing himself to Ariel, "was the date of it, the
seventeenth of June. The Colonel and I got to talkin' it over, out on his porch, last night, tryin' to rec'lect what
was goin' on about then, and we figgered it out that it was the Monday after you come back, the very day he
got so upset when he saw you goin' up to Louden's law office with your roses."
Joe looked quickly at Ariel. She did not meet his glance, but, turning instead to Ladew, the clergyman, began,
with a barely perceptible blush, to talk of something he had said in a sermon two weeks ago. The two fell into
a thoughtful and amiable discussion, during which there stole into Joe's heart a strange and unreasonable
pain. The young minister had lived in Canaan only a few months, and Joe had never seen him until that
morning; but he liked the short, honest talk he had made; liked his cadenceless voice and keen, dark face;
and, recalling what he had heard Martin Pike vociferating in his brougham one Sunday, perceived that Ladew
was the fellow who had "got to go" because his sermons did not please the Judge. Yet Ariel remembered for
more than a fortnight a passage from one of these sermons. And as Joe looked at the manly and intelligent
face opposite him, it did not seem strange that she should.
He resolutely turned his eyes to the open window and saw that they had entered the cemetery, were near the
green knoll where Eskew was to lie beside a brother who had died long ago. He let the minister help Ariel
out, going quickly forward himself with Buckalew; and thenafter the little while that the restoration of dust
to dust mercifully needshe returned to the carriage only to get his hat.
Ariel and Ladew and the Squire were already seated and waiting. "Aren't you going to ride home with us?"
she asked, surprised.
"No," he explained, not looking at her. "I have to talk with Norbert Flitcroft. I'm going back with him.
Goodbye."
His excuse was the mere truth, his conversation with Norbert, in the carriage which they managed to secure
to themselves, continuing earnestly until Joe spoke to the driver and alighted at a corner, near Mr. Farbach's
Italian possessions. "Don't forget," he said, as he closed the carriage door, "I've got to have both ends of the
string in my hands."
"Forget!" Norbert looked at the cupola of the Pike Mansion, rising above the maples down the street. "It isn't
likely I'll forget!"
When Joe entered the "Louis Quinze room" which some decorator, drunk with power, had mingled into the
brewer's villa, he found the owner and Mr. Sheehan, with five other men, engaged in a meritorious attempt to
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 116
Page No 119
tone down the apartment with smoke. Two of the five others were prosperous owners of saloons; two were
known to the public (whose notion of what it meant when it used the term was something of the vaguest) as
politicians; the fifth was Mr. Farbach's closest friend, one who (Joe had heard) was to be the next chairman of
the city committee of the party. They were seated about a table, enveloped in blue clouds, and hushed to a
grave and pertinent silence which clarified immediately the circumstance that whatever debate had preceded
his arrival, it was now settled.
Their greeting of him, however, though exceedingly quiet, indicated a certain expectancy, as he accepted the
chair which had been left for him at the head of the table. He looked thinner and paler than usual, which is
saying a great deal; but presently, finding that the fateful hush which his entrance had broken was
immediately resumed, a twinkle came into his eye, one of his eyebrows went up and a corner of his mouth
went down.
"Well, gentlemen?" he said.
The smokers continued to smoke and to do nothing else; the exception being Mr. Sheehan, who, though he
spoke not, exhibited tokens of agitation and excitement which he curbed with difficulty; shifting about in his
chair, gnawing his cigar, crossing and uncrossing his knees, rubbing and slapping his hands together, clearing
his throat with violence, his eyes fixed all the while, as were those of his companions, upon Mr. Farbach; so
that Joe was given to perceive that it had been agreed that the brewer should be the spokesman. Mr. Farbach
was deliberate, that was all, which added to the effect of what he finally did say.
"Choe," he remarked, placidly, "you are der next Mayor off Canaan."
"Why do you say that?" asked the young man, sharply.
"Bickoss us here," he answered, interlocking the tips of his fingers over his waistcoat, that being as near
folding his hands as lay within his power, "bickoss us here shall try to fix it so, und so hef ditcided."
Joe took a deep breath. "Why do you want me?"
"Dot," replied the brewer, "iss someding I shall tell you." He paused to contemplate his cigar. "We want you
bickoss you are der best man fer dot positsion."
"Louie, you mustn't make a mistake at the beginning," Joe said, hurriedly. "I may not be the kind of man
you're looking for. If I went in" He hesitated, stammering. "It seems an ungrateful thing to say, butbut
there wouldn't be any slacknessI couldn't be bound to anybody"
"Holt up your hosses!" Mr. Farbach, once in his life, was so ready to reply that he was able to interrupt. "Who
hef you heert speak off bounding? Hef I speakt off favors? Dit I say der shoult be slackness in der city
gofer'ment? Litsen to me, Choe." He renewed his contemplation of his cigar, then proceeded: "I hef been
t'inkin' it ofer, now a couple years. I hef mate up my mind. If some peobles are gombelt to keep der laws and
oders are not, dot's a great atwantitch to der oders. Dot iss what iss ruining der gountry und der peobles iss
commencement to take notice. Efer'veres in oder towns der iss housecleaning; dey are reforming und
indieding, und pooty soon dot mofement comes hereshooer! If we intent to holt der parsly in power, we
shoult be a leetle ahead off dot mofement so, when it shoult be here, we hef a goot 'minadstration to fall beck
on. Now, dere iss anoder brewery opened und trying to gombete mit me here in Canaan. If dot brewery owns
der Mayor, all der tsaloons buying my bier must shut up at 'leven o'glock und Sundays, but der oders keep
open. If I own der Mayor, I make der same against dot oder brewery. Now I am pooty sick off dot ways off
bitsness und fighting all times. Also," Mr. Farbach added, with magnificent calmness, "my trade iss larchly
owitside off Canaan, und it iss bedder dot here der laws shoult be enforced der same fer all. Litsen, Choe; all
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 117
Page No 120
us here beliefs der same way. You are square. Der whole tsaloon element knows dot, und knows dot all voult
be treated der same. Mit you it voult be fairness fer each one. Foolish peobles hef sait you are a lawtricker,
but we know dot you hef only mate der laws brotect as well as bunish. Und at such times as dey het been
broken, you hef made dem as mertsiful as you coult. You are no tricker. We are willing to help you make it a
glean town. Odervise der fightin' voult go on until der mofement strikes here und all der granks vake up und
we git a fool reformer fer Mayor und der town goes to der dogs. If I try to put in a man dot I own, der oder
brewery iss goin' to fight like hell, but if I work fer you it will not fight so hart."
"But the other people," Joe objected. "those outside of what is called the saloon elementdo you understand
how many of them will be against me?"
"It iss der tsaloon element," Mr. Farbach returned, peacefully, "dot does der fightin'."
"And you have considered my standing with that part of Canaan which considers itself the most respectable
section?" He rose to his feet, standing straight and quiet, facing the table, upon which, it chanced, there lay a
copy of the Tocsin.
"Und yet," observed Mr. Farbach, with mildness, "we got some pooty risbecdable men right here."
"Except me," broke in Mr. Sheehan, grimly, "you have."
"Have you thought of this?" Joe leaned forward and touched the paper upon the table.
"We hef," replied Mr. Farbach. "All of us. You shall beat it,"
There was a strong chorus of confirmation from the others, and Joe's eyes flashed.
"Have you considered," he continued, rapidly, while a warm color began to conquer his pallor, "have you
considered the powerful influence which will be against me, and more against me now, I should tell you, than
ever before? That influence, I mean, which is striving so hard to discredit me that lynchlaw has been hinted
for poor Fear if I should clear him! Have you thought of that? Have you thought"
"Have we thought o' Martin Pike?" exclaimed Mr. Sheehan, springing to his feet, face aflame and beard
bristling. "Ay, we've thought o' Martin Pike, and our thinkin' of him is where he begins to git what's comin' to
him! What d'ye stand there pickin' straws fer? What's the matter with ye?" he demanded, angrily, his violence
tenfold increased by the long repression he had put upon himself during the brewer's deliberate utterances. "If
Louie Farbach and his crowd says they're fer ye, I guess ye've got a chanst, haven't ye?"
"Wait," said Joe. "I think you underestimate Pike's influence"
"Underestimate the devil!" shouted Mr. Sheehan, uncontrollably excited. "You talk about influence! He's
been the worst influence this town's ever hadand his tracks covered up in the dark wherever he set his ugly
foot down. These men know it, and you know some, but not the worst of it, because none of ye live as deep
down in it as I do! Ye want to make a clean town of it, ye want to make a little heaven of the Beach"
"And in the eyes of Judge Pike," Joe cut him off, "and of all who take their opinions from him, I
REPRESENT Beaver Beach!"
Mike Sheehan gave a wild shout. "Whooroo! It's come! I knowed it would! The day I couldn't hold my
tongue, though I passed my word I would when the coward showed the deed he didn't dare to git recorded!
Waugh!" He shouted again, with bitter laughter. "Ye do! In the eyes o' them as follow Martin Pike ye stand
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 118
Page No 121
fer the Beach and all its wickedness, do ye? Whooroo! It's come! Ye're an offence in the eyes o' Martin Pike
and all his kind because ye stand fer the Beach, are ye?"
"You know it!" Joe answered, sharply. "If they could wipe the Beach off the map and me with it"
"Martin Pike would?" shouted Mr. Sheehan, while the others, openmouthed, stared at him. "Martin Pike
would?"
"I don't need to tell you that," said Joe.
Mr, Sheehan's big fist rose high over the table and descended crashing upon it. "It's a damn lie !" he roared.
"Martin Pike owns Beaver Beach!"
XXIII. JOE WALKS ACROSS THE COURTHOUSE YARD
From within the glossy old walnut bar that ran from wall to wall, the eyes of the lawyers and reporters
wandered often to Ariel as she sat in the packed courtroom watching Louden's fight for the life and liberty
of Happy Fear. She had always three escorts, and though she did not miss a session, and the same three never
failed to attend her, no whisper of scandal arose. But not upon them did the glances of the members of the bar
and the journalists with tender frequency linger; nor were the younger members of these two professions all
who gazed that way. Joe had fought out the selection of the jury with the prosecutor at great length and with
infinite pains; it was not a young jury, and IT stared at her. The "Court" wore a gray beard with which a flock
of sparrows might have villaged a grove, and yet, in spite of the vital necessity for watchfulness over this
fighting case, IT once needed to be stirred from a trancelike gaze in Miss Tabor's direction and aroused to the
realization that It was there to Sit and not to dream.
The August air was warm outside the windows, inviting to the open country, to swimmin'hole, to orchard
reveries, or shaded pool wherein to drop a meditative line; you would have thought no one could willingly
coop himself in this hot room for three hours, twice a day, while lawyers wrangled, often unintelligibly, over
the life of a dingy little creature like Happy Fear, yet the struggle to swelter there was almost like a riot, and
the bailiffs were busy men.
It was a fighting case throughout, fought to a finish on each tiny point as it came up, dragging, in the mere
matter of time, interminably, yet the people of Canaan (not only those who succeeded in penetrating to the
courtroom, but the others who hung about the corridors, or outside the building, and the great mass of
stayathomes who read the story in the Tocsin) found each moment of it enthralling enough. The State's
attorney, fearful of losing so notorious a case, and not underestimating his opponent, had modestly
summoned others to his aid; and the attorney for the defence, single handed, faced "an array of legal talent
such as seldom indeed had hollered at this bar"; faced it goodnaturedly, an eyebrow crooked up and his head
on one side, most of the time, yet faced it indomitably. He had a certain careless and disarming smile when he
lost a point, which carried off the defeat as of only humorous account and not at all part of the serious
business in hand; and in his treatment of witnesses, he was plausible, kindly, knowing that in this case he had
no intending perjurer to entrap; brought into play the rare and delicate art of which he was a master,
employing in his questions subtle suggestions and shadings of tone and manner, and avoiding words of
debatable and dangerous meanings;a fine craft, often attempted by blunderers to their own undoing, but
which, practised by Joseph Louden, made inarticulate witnesses articulate to the precise effects which he
desired. This he accomplished as much by the help of the continuous fire of objections from the other side as
in spite of them. He was infinitely careful, asking never an illadvised question for the other side to use to his
hurt, and, though exhibiting only a pleasant easiness of manner, was electrically alert.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 119
Page No 122
A hundred things had shown Ariel that the feeling of the place, influenced by "public sentiment" without, was
subtly and profoundly hostile to Joe and his client; she read this in the spectators, in the jury, even in the
Judge; but it seemed to her that day by day the inimical spirit gradually failed, inside the railing, and also in
those spectators who, like herself, were enabled by special favor to be present throughout the trial, and that
now and then a kindlier sentiment began to be manifested. She was unaware how strongly she contributed to
effect this herself, not only through the glow of visible sympathy which radiated from her, but by a particular
action. Claudine was called by the State, and told as much of her story as the law permitted her to tell,
interlarding her replies with fervent protestations (too quick to be prevented) that she "never meant to bring
no trouble to Mr. Fear" and that she "did hate to have gen'lemen starting things on her account." When the
defence took this perturbed witness, her interpolations became less frequent, and she described
straightforwardly how she had found the pistol on the floor near the prostrate figure of Cory, and hidden it in
her own dress. The attorneys for the State listened with a somewhat cynical amusement to this portion of her
testimony, believing it of no account, uncorroborated, and that if necessary the State could impeach the
witness on the ground that it had been indispensable to produce her. She came down weeping from the stand;
and, the next witness not being immediately called, the eyes of the jurymen naturally followed her as she
passed to her seat, and they saw Ariel Tabor bow gravely to her across the railing. Now, a thousand things not
set forth by legislatures, lawmen and judges affect a jury, and the slight salutation caused the members of
this one to glance at one another; for it seemed to imply that the exquisite lady in white not only knew
Claudine, but knew that she had spoken the truth. It was after this, that a feeling favorable to the defence now
and then noticeably manifested itself in the court room. Still, when the evidence for the State was all in, the
life of Happy Fear seemed to rest in a balance precarious indeed, and the little man, swallowing pitifully,
looked at his attorney with the eyes of a sick dog.
Then Joe gave the prosecutors an illuminating and stunning surprise, and, having offered in evidence the
revolver found upon Claudine, produced as his first witness a pawnbroker of Denver, who identified the
weapon as one he had sold to Cory, whom he had known very well. The second witness, also a stranger, had
been even more intimately acquainted with the dead man, and there began to be an uneasy comprehension of
what Joe had accomplished during that prolonged absence of his which had so nearly cost the life of the little
mongrel, who was at present (most blissful Respectability!) a lively convalescent in Ariel's back yard. The
second witness also identified the revolver, testifying that he had borrowed it from Cory in St. Louis to settle
a question of marksmanship, and that on his returning it to the owner, the latter, then working his way
eastward, had confided to him his intention of stopping in Canaan for the purpose of exercising its
melancholy functions upon a man who had once "done him good" in that city.
By the time the witness had reached this point, the Prosecutor and his assistants were on their feet, excitedly
shouting objections, which were promptly overruled. Taken unawares, they fought for time; thunder was
loosed, forensic bellowings; everybody lost his temperexcept Joe; and the examination of the witness
proceeded. Cory, with that singular inspiration to confide in some one, which is the characteristic and the
undoing of his kind, had outlined his plan of operations to the witness with perfect clarity. He would first
attempt, so he had declared, to incite an attack upon himself by playing upon the jealousy of his victim,
having already made a tentative effort in that direction. Failing in this, he would fall back upon one of a
dozen schemes (for he was ready in such matters, he bragged), the most likely of which would be to play the
peacemaker; he would talk of his good intentions toward his enemy, speaking publicly of him in friendly and
gentle ways; then, getting at him secretly, destroy him in such a fashion as to leave open for himself the kind
gate of selfdefence. In brief, here was the whole tally of what had actually occurred, with the exception of
the last account in the sequence which had proved that demise for which Cory had not arranged and it fell
from the lips of a witness whom the prosecution had no means of impeaching. When he left the stand,
unshaken and undiscredited, after a frantic crossexamination, Joe, turning to resume his seat, let his hand
fall lightly for a second upon his client's shoulder.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 120
Page No 123
That was the occasion of a demonstration which indicated a sentiment favorable to the defence (on the part of
at least three of the spectators); and it was in the nature of such a hammering of canes upon the bare wooden
floor as effectually stopped all other proceedings instantly. The indignant Judge fixed the Colonel, Peter
Bradbury, and Squire Buckalew with his glittering eye, yet the hammering continued unabated; and the
offenders surely would have been conducted forth in ignominy, had not gallantry prevailed, even in that
formal place. The Judge, reluctantly realizing that some latitude must be allowed to these aged enthusiasts,
since they somehow seemed to belong to Miss Tabor, made his remarks general, with the timeworn threat to
clear the room, whereupon the loyal survivors of Eskew relapsed into unabashed silence.
It was now, as Joe had said, a clearenough case. Only the case itself, however, was clear, for, as he and his
friends feared, the verdict might possibly be neither in accordance with the law, the facts, nor the convictions
of the jury. Eugene's defection had not altered the tone of the Tocsin.
All day long a crowd of men and boys hung about the corridors of the Courthouse, about the Square and the
neighboring streets, and from these rose sombre murmurs, more and more ominous. The public sentiment of a
community like Canaan can make itself felt inside a courtroom; and it was strongly exerted against Happy
Fear. The Tocsin had always been a powerful agent; Judge Pike had increased its strength with a staff which
was thoroughly efficient, alert, and always able to strike centre with the paper's readers; and in town and
country it had absorbed the circulation of the other local journals, which resisted feebly at times, but in the
matter of the Cory murder had not dared to do anything except follow the Tocsin's lead. The Tocsin, having
lit the fire, fed itfed it saltpetre and sulphurfor now Martin Pike was fighting hard.
The farmers and people of the less urban parts of the country were accustomed to found their opinions upon
the Tocsin. They regarded it as the single immutable rock of journalistic righteousness and wisdom in the
world. Consequently, stirred by the outbursts of the paper, they came into Canaan in great numbers, and
though the pressure from the town itself was so strong that only a few of them managed to crowd into the
courtroom, the others joined their voices to those sombre murmurs outdoors, which increased in loudness as
the trial went on.
The Tocsin, however, was not having everything its own way; the volume of outcry against Happy Fear and
his lawyer had diminished, it was noticed, in "very respectable quarters." The information imparted by Mike
Sheehan to the politicians at Mr. Farbach's had been slowly seeping through the various social strata of the
town, and though at first incredulously rejected, it began to find acceptance; Upper Main Street cooling
appreciably in its acceptance of the Tocsin as the law and the prophets. There were even a few who dared to
wonder in their hearts if there had not been a mistake about Joe Louden; and although Mrs. Flitcroft
weakened not, the relatives of Squire Buckalew and of Peter Bradbury began to hold up their heads a little,
after having made home horrible for those gentlemen and reproached them with their conversion as the last
word of senile shame. In addition, the Colonel's grandson and Mr. Bradbury's grandson had both
mystifyingly lent countenance to Joe, consorting with him openly; the former for his own purposesthe
latter because he had cunningly discovered that it was a way to Miss Tabor's regard, which, since her gentle
rejection of him, he had grown to believe (good youth!) might be the pleasantest thing that could ever come
to him. In short, the question had begun to thrive: Was it possible that Eskew Arp had not been insane, after
all?
The best of those who gathered ominously about the Courthouse and its purlieus were the young farmers
and fieldhands, artisans and clerks; one of the latter being a pimply faced young man (lately from the
doctor's hands), who limped, and would limp for the rest of his life, he who, of all men, held the memory of
Eskew Arp in least respect, and was burningly desirous to revenge himself upon the living.
The worst were of that mystifying, embryonic, semirowdy type, the American voyou, in the production of
which Canaan and her sister towns everywhere over the country are prolific; the young man, youth, boy
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 121
Page No 124
perhaps, creature of nameless age, whose clothes are like those of a brakeman out of work, but who is not a
brakeman in or out of work; wearing the black, soft hat tilted forward to shelteras a counter does the
contempt of a clerkthat expression which the face does not dare wear quite in the open, asserting the
possession of supreme capacity in wit, strength, dexterity, and amours; the dirty handkerchief under the
collar; the short black coat always doublebreasted; the eyelids sooty; one cheek always bulged; the forehead
speckled; the lips cracked; horrible teeth; and the affectation of possessing secret information upon all matters
of the universe; above all, the instinct of finding the shortest way to any scene of official interest to the
policeman, fireman, or ambulance surgeon,a singular being, not professionally criminal; tough
histrionically rather than really; full of its own argot of brag; hysterical when crossed, timid through great
ignorance, and therefore dangerous. It furnishes not the leaders but the mass of mobs; and it springs up at
times of crisis from Heaven knows where. You might have driven through all the streets of Canaan, a week
before the trial, and have seen four or five such fellows; but from the day of its beginning the Square was full
of them, dingy shuttlecocks batted up into view by the Tocsin.
They kept the air whirring with their noise. The news of that sitting which had caused the Squire, Flitcroft,
and Peter Bradbury to risk the Court's displeasure, was greeted outside with loud and vehement disfavor; and
when, at noon, the jurymen were marshalled out to cross the yard to the "National House" for dinner, a large
crowd followed and surrounded them, until they reached the doors of the hotel. "Don't let Lawyer Louden
bamboozle you!" "Hang him!" "Tar and feathers fer ye ef ye don't hang him!" These were the mildest threats,
and Joe Louden, watching from an upper window of the Courthouse, observed with a troubled eye how
certain of the jury shrank from the pressure of the throng, how the cheeks of others showed sudden pallor.
Sometimes "public sentiment" has done evil things to those who have not shared it; and Joe knew how rare a
thing is a jury which dares to stand square against a town like Canaan aroused.
The end of that afternoon's session saw another point marked for the defence; Joe had put the defendant on
the stand, and the little man had proved an excellent witness. During his life he had been many thingsmany
things disreputable; high standards were not brightly illumined for him in the beginning of the nightmarch
which his life had been. He had been a tramp, afterward a petty gambler; but his great motive had finally
come to be the intention to do what Joe told him to do: that, and to keep Claudine as straight as he could. In a
measure, these were the two things that had brought him to the pass in which he now stood, his loyalty to Joe
and his resentment of whatever tampered with Claudine's straightness. He was submissive to the
consequences: he was still loyal. And now Joe asked him to tell "just what happened," and Happy obeyed
with crystal clearness. Throughout the long, tricky cross examination he continued to tell "just what
happened" with a plaintive truthfulness not to be imitated, and throughout it Joe guarded him from pitfalls
(for lawyers in their search after truth are compelled by the exigencies of their profession to make pitfalls
even for the honest), and gave him, by various devices, time to remember, though not to think, and made the
words "come right" in his mouth. So that before the sitting was over, a disquieting rumor ran through the
waiting crowd in the corridors, across the Square, and over the town, that the case was surely going
"Louden's way." This was also the opinion of a lookeron in Canaana ferretfaced counsellor of
corporations who, called to consultation with the eminent Buckalew (nephew of the Squire), had afterward
spent an hour in his company at the trial. "It's going that young fellow Louden's way," said the stranger. "You
say he's a shyster, but"
"Well," admitted Buckalew, with some reluctance, "I don't mean that exactly. I've got an old uncle who
seems lately to think he's a great man."
"I'll take your uncle's word for it," returned the other, smiling. "I think he'll go pretty far."
They had come to the flight of steps which descended to the yard,and the visitor, looking down upon the
angry crowd, added, "If they don't kill him!"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 122
Page No 125
Joe himself was anxious concerning no such matter. He shook hands with Happy at the end of the sitting,
bidding him be of good cheer, and, when the little man had marched away, under a strong guard, began to
gather and sort his papers at a desk inside the bar. This took him perhaps five minutes, and when he had
finished there were only three people left in the room: a clerk, a negro janitor with a broom, and the darky
friend who always hopefully accompanies a colored man holding high public office. These two approvingly
greeted the young lawyer, the janitor handing him a note from Norbert Flitcroft, and the friend mechanically
"borrowing" a quarter from him as he opened the envelope.
"I'll be roun' yo' way to git a box o' SEgahs," laughed the friend, "soon ez de campaign open up good. Dey
all goin' vote yo' way, down on the levee bank, but dey sho' expecks to git to smoke a little 'fo' leckshunday!
We knows who's OW frien'!"
Norbert's missive was lengthy and absorbing; Joe went on his way, perusing it with profound attention; but as
he descended the stairway to the floor below, a loud burst of angry shouting, outside the building, caused him
to hasten toward the big front doors which faced Main Street. The doors opened upon an imposing vestibule,
from which a handsome flight of stone steps, protected by a marble balustrade, led to the ground.
Standing at the top of these steps and leaning over the balustrade, he had a clear view of half the yard. No one
was near him; everybody was running in the opposite direction, toward that corner of the yard occupied by
the jail, the crowd centring upon an agitated whirlpool of men which moved slowly toward a door in the high
wall that enclosed the building; and Joe saw that Happy Fear's guards, conducting the prisoner back to his
cell, were being jostled and rushed. The distance they had made was short, but as they reached the door the
pressure upon them increased dangerously. Clubs rose in the air, hats flew, the whirlpool heaved
tumultuously, and the steel door clanged.
Happy Fear was safe inside, but the jostlers were outsidebaffled, ugly, and stirred with the passion that
changes a crowd into a mob.
Then some of them caught sight of Joe as he stood alone at the top of the steps, and a great shout of rage and
exultation arose.
For a moment or two he did not see his danger. At the clang of the door, his eyes, caught by the gleam of a
wide white hat, had turned toward the street, and he was somewhat fixedly watching Mr. Ladew extricate
Ariel (and her aged and indignant escorts) from an overflow of the crowd in which they had been caught. But
a voice warned him: the wild piping of a newsboy who had climbed into a tree near by.
"JOE LOUDEN!" he screamed. "LOOK OUT!"
With a muffled roar the crowd surged back from the jail and turned toward the steps. "Tar and feather him!"
"Take him over to the river and throw him in!" "Drown him!" "Hang him!"
Then a thing happened which was dramatic enough in its inception, but almost ludicrous in its effect. Joe
walked quietly down the steps and toward the advancing mob with his head cocked to one side, one eyebrow
lifted, and one corner of his mouth drawn down in a faintly distorted smile.
He went straight toward the yelling forerunners, with only a small bundle of papers in his hands, and
thenwhile the nonpartisan spectators held their breath, expecting the shock of contact straight on
through them.
A number of the bulgecheeked formed the scattering van of these forerunners, charging with hoarse and
cruel shrieks of triumph. The first, apparently about to tear Joseph Louden to pieces, changed countenance at
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 123
Page No 126
arm'slength, swerved violently, and with the loud cry, "HEAD HIM OFF!" dashed on up the stone steps.
The man next behind him followed his lead, with the same shout, strategy, and haste; then the others of this
advance attack, finding themselves confronting the quiet man, who kept his even pace and showed no
intention of turning aside for them, turned suddenly aside for HIM, and, taking the cue from the first, pursued
their way, bellowing: "HEAD HIM OFF! HEAD HIM OFF!" until there were a dozen and more rowdyish
men and youths upon the steps, their eyes blazing with fury, menacing Louden's back with frightful gestures
across the marble balustrade, as they hysterically bleated the chorus, "HEAD HIM OFF!"
Whether or not Joe could have walked through the entire mob as he had walked through these is a matter for
speculation; it was believed in Canaan that he could. Already a gust of mirth began to sweep over the sterner
spirits as they paused to marvel no less at the disconcerting advance of the lawyer than at the spectacle
presented by the intrepid daredevils upon the steps; a kind of lane actually opening before the young man as
he walked steadily on. And when Mr. Sheehan, leading half a dozen huge men from the Farbach brewery,
unceremoniously shouldered a way through the mob to Joe's side, reaching him where the press was thickest,
it is a question if the services of his detachment were needed.
The laughter increased. It became voluminous. Homeric salvos shook the air. And never one of the
fireeaters upon the steps lived long enough to live down the hateful cry of that day, "HEAD HIM OFF!"
which was to become a catchword on the streets, a taunt more stinging than any devised by deliberate
invention, an insult bitterer than the ancestral doubt, a fightingword, and the great historical joke of Canaan,
never omitted in after days when the tale was told how Joe Louden took that short walk across the
Courthouse yard which made him Mayor of Canaan.
XXIV. MARTIN PIKE KEEPS AN ENGAGEMENT
An hour later, Martin Pike, looking forth from the Mansion, saw a man open the gate, and, passing between
the unemotional deer, rapidly approach the house. He was a thin young fellow, very well dressed in dark
gray, his hair prematurely somewhat silvered, his face prematurely somewhat lined, and his hat covered a
scar such as might have been caused by a blow from a blunt instrument in the nature of a poker.
He did not reach the door, nor was there necessity for him to ring, for, before he had set foot on the lowest
step, the Judge had hastened to meet him. Not, however, with any fulsomely hospitable intent; his hand and
arm were raised to execute one of his Olympian gestures, of the kind which had obliterated the young man
upon a certain by gone morning.
Louden looked up calmly at the big figure towering above him.
"It won't do, Judge," he said; that was all, but there was a significance in his manner and a certainty in his
voice which caused the uplifted hand to drop limply; while the look of apprehension which of late had grown
more and more to be Martin Pike's habitual expression deepened into something close upon mortal anxiety.
"Have you any business to set foot upon my property?" he demanded.
"Yes," answered Joe. "That's why I came."
"What business have you got with me?"
"Enough to satisfy you, I think. But there's one thing I don't want to do"Joe glanced at the open
door"and that is to talk about it herefor your own sake and because I think Miss Tabor should be
present. I called to ask you to come to her house at eight o'clock tonight."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 124
Page No 127
"You did!" Martin Pike spoke angrily, but not in the bullbass of yore; and he kept his voice down, glancing
about him nervously as though he feared that his wife or Mamie might hear. "My accounts with her estate are
closed," he said, harshly. "If she wants anything, let her come here."
Joe shook his head. "No. You must be there at eight o'clock "
The Judge's choler got the better of his uneasiness. "You're a pretty one to come ordering me around!" he
broke out. "You slanderer, do you suppose I haven't heard how you're going about traducing me, undermining
my character in this community, spreading scandals that I am the real owner of Beaver Beach"
"It can easily be proved, Judge," Joe interrupted, quietly, "though you're wrong: I haven't been telling people.
I haven't needed toeven if I'd wished. Once a thing like that gets out you can't stop itever! That isn't all:
to my knowledge you own other property worse than the Beach; I know that you own half of the worst dens
in the town: profitable investments, too. You bought them very gradually and craftily, only showing the
deeds to those in chargeas you did to Mike Sheehan, and not recording them. Sheehan's betrayal of you
gave me the key; I know most of the poor creatures who are your tenants, too, you see, and that gave me an
advantage because they have some confidence in me. My investigations have been almost as quiet and careful
as your purchases."
"You damned blackmailer!" The Judge bent upon him a fierce, inquiring scrutiny in which, oddly enough,
there was a kind of haggard hopefulness. "And out of such stories," he sneered, "you are going to try to make
political capital against the Tocsin, are you?"
"No," said Joe. "It was necessary in the interests of my client for me to know pretty thoroughly just what
property you own, and I think I do. These pieces I've mentioned are about all you have not mortgaged. You
couldn't do that without exposure, and you've kept a controlling interest in the Tocsin clear, toofor the sake
of its influence, I suppose. Now, do you want to hear any more, or will you agree to meet me at Miss Tabor's
this evening?"
Whatever the look of hopefulness had signified, it fled from Pike's face during this speech, but he asked with
some show of contempt, "Do you think it likely?"
"Very well," said Joe, "if you want me to speak here." And he came a little closer to him. "You bought a big
block of Granger Gas for Roger Tabor," he began, in a low voice. "Before his death you sold everything he
had, except the old house, put it all into cash for him, and bought that stock; you signed the check as his
attorneyinfact, and it came back to you through the Washington National, where Norbert Flitcroft handled
it. He has a good memory, and when he told me what he knew, I had him to do some tracing; did a little
myself, also. Judge Pike, I must tell you that you stand in danger of the law. You were the custodian of that
stock for Roger Tabor; it was transferred in blank; though I think you meant to be `legal' at that time, and that
was merely for convenience in case Roger had wished you to sell it for him. But just after his death you
found yourself saddled with distillery stock, which was going bad on your hands. Other speculations of yours
were failing at the same time; you had to have moneyyou filed your report as administrator, crediting Miss
Tabor with your own stock which you knew was going to the wall, and transferred hers to yourself. Then you
sold it because you needed ready money. You used her fortune to save yourselfbut you were horribly
afraid! No matter how rotten your transactions had been, you had always kept inside the law; and now that
you had gone outside of it, you were frightened. You didn't dare come flat out to Miss Tabor with the
statement that her fortune had gone; it had been in your charge all the time and things might look ugly. So
you put it off, perhaps from day to day. You didn't dare tell her until you were forced to, and to avoid the
confession you sent her the income which was rightfully hers. That was your great weakness."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 125
Page No 128
Joe had spoken with great rapidity, though keeping his voice low, and he lowered it again, as he continued:
"Judge Pike, what chance have you to be believed in court when you swear that you sent her twenty thousand
dollars out of the goodness of your heart? Do you think SHE believed you? It was the very proof to her that
you had robbed her. For she knew you! Do you want to hear more now? Do you think this is a good place for
it? Do you wish me to go over the details of each step I have taken against you, to land you at the bar where
this poor fellow your paper is hounding stands today?"
The Judge essayed to answer, and could not. He lifted his hand uncertainly and dropped it, while a thick dew
gathered on his temples. Inarticulate sounds came from between his teeth.
"You will come?" said Joe.
Martin Pike bent his head dazedly; and at that the other turned quickly from him and went away without
looking back.
Ariel was in the studio, half an hour later, when Joe was announced by the smiling Mr. Warden. Ladew was
with her, though upon the point of taking his leave, and Joe marked (with a sinking heart) that the young
minister's cheeks were flushed and his eyes very bright.
"It was a magnificent thing you did, Mr. Louden," he said, offering his hand heartily; "I saw it, and it was
even finer in one way than it was plucky. It somehow straightened things out with such perfect good nature; it
made those people feel that what they were doing was ridiculous."
"So it was," said Joe.
"Few, under the circumstances, could have acted as if they thought so! And I hope you'll let me call upon
you, Mr. Louden."
"I hope you will," he answered; and then, when the minister had departed, stood looking after him with sad
eyes, in which there dwelt obscure meditations. Ladew's word of farewell had covered a deep look at Ariel,
which was not to be mistaken by Joseph Louden for anything other than what it was: the clergyman's secret
was an open one, and Joe saw that he was as frank and manly in love as in all other things. "He's a good
fellow," he said at last, sighing. "A good man."
Ariel agreed. "And he said more to me than he did to you."
"Yes, I think it probable," Joe smiled sorrowfully.
"About YOU, I mean." He had time to fear that her look admitted confusion before she proceeded: "He said
he had never seen anything so fine as your coming down those steps. Ah, he was right! But it was harder for
me to watch you, I think, than for you to do it, Joe. I was so horribly afraidand the crowd between usif
we could have got near youbut we couldn'twe"
She faltered, and pressed her hand close upon her eyes.
"We?" asked Joe, slowly. "You mean you and Mr. Ladew?"
"Yes, he was there; but I mean"her voice ran into a little laugh with a beatific quaver in it "I mean
Colonel Flitcroft and Mr. Bradbury and Mr. Buckalew, toowe were hemmed in together when Mr. Ladew
found usand, oh, Joe, when that cowardly rush started toward you, those threeI've heard wonderful
things in Paris and Naples, cabmen quarrelling and disappointed beggarsbut never anything like them
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 126
Page No 129
today"
"You mean they were profane?"
"Oh, magnificentlyand with such inventiveness! All three begged my pardon afterwards. I didn't grant
itI blessed them!"
"Did they beg Mr. Ladew's pardon?"
"Ah, Joe!" she reproached him. "He isn't a prig. And he's had to fight some things that you of all men ought
to understand. He's only been here a few months, but he told me that Judge Pike has been against him from
the start. It seems that Mr. Ladew is too liberal in his views. And he told me that if it were not for Judge
Pike's losing influence in the church on account of the Beaver Beach story, the Judge would probably have
been able to force him to resign; but now he will stay."
"He wishes to stay, doesn't he?"
"Very much, I think. And, Joe," she continued, thoughtfully, "I want you to do something for me. I want you
to go to church with me next Sunday."
"To hear Mr. Ladew?"
"Yes. I wouldn't ask except for that."
"Very well," he consented, with averted eyes. "I'll go."
Her face was radiant with the smile she gave him. "It will make me very happy," she said.
He bent his head and fumbled over some papers he had taken from his pocket. "Will you listen to these
memoranda? We have a great deal to go over before eight o'clock."
Judge Pike stood for a long while where Joe had left him, staring out at the street, apparently. Really he saw
nothing. Undoubtedly an image of blurring foliage, castiron, cement, and turf, with sunshine smeared over
all, flickered upon the retinas of his eyes; but the brain did not accept the picture from the optic nerve. Martin
Pike was busy with other visions. Joe Louden had followed him back to his hidden deeds and had read them
aloud to him as Gabriel would read them on Judgment day. Perhaps THIS was the Judgmentday.
Pike had taken charge of Roger Tabor's affairs because the commissions as agent were not too inconsiderable
to be neglected. To make the task simpler, he had sold, as time went on, the various properties of the estate,
gradually converting all of them into cash. Then, the opportunity offering, he bought a stock which paid
excellent dividends, had it transferred in blank, because if it should prove to Roger's advantage to sell it, his
agent could do so without any formal delays between Paris and Canaan. At least, that is what the Judge had
told himself at the time, though it may be that some lurking whisperer in his soul had hinted that it might be
well to preserve the great amount of cash in hand, and Roger's stock was practically that. Then came the evil
days. Laboriously, he had built up a name for conservatism which most of the town accepted, but secretly he
had always been a gambler: Wall Street was his goal; to adventure there, as one of the great singleeyed
Cyclopean maneaters, his fond ambition; and he had conceived the distillery trust as a means to attain it; but
the structure tumbled about his ears; other edifices of his crumbled at the same time; he found himself beset,
his solvency endangered, and there was the Tabor stock, quite as good as gold; Roger had just died, and it
was enough to save him.Save? That was a strange way to be remembering it today, when Fate grinned at
him out of a dreadful mask contorted like the face of Norbert Flitcroft.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 127
Page No 130
Martin Pike knew himself for a fool. What chance had he, though he destroyed the check a thousand times
over, to escape the records by which the coil of modern trade duplicates and quadruplicates each slip of
scribbled paper? What chance had he against the memories of men? Would the man of whom he had bought,
forget that the check was signed by Roger's agent? Had the bankclerk forgotten? Thrice fool, Martin Pike, to
dream that in a town like Canaan, Norbert or any of his kind could touch an order for so great a sum and
forget it! But Martin Pike had not dreamed that; had dreamed nothing. When failure confronted him his mind
refused to consider anything but his vital need at the time, and he had supplied that need. And now he grew
busy with the future: he saw first the civil suit for restitution, pressed with the ferocity and cunning of one
who intended to satisfy a grudge of years; then, perhaps, a criminal prosecution. . . . But he would fight it!
Did they think that such a man was to be overthrown by a breath of air? By a girl, a bankclerk, and a shyster
lawyer? They would find their case difficult to prove in court. He did not believe they COULD prove it. They
would be discredited for the attempt upon him and he would win clear; these Beaver Beach scandals would
die of inertia presently; there would he a lucky trick in wheat, and Martin Pike would be Martin Pike once
more; reinstated, dictator of church, politics, business; all those things which were the breath of his life
restored. He would show this pitiful pack what manner of man they hounded! Norbert Flitcroft. . . .
The Judge put his big hand up to his eyes and rubbed them. Curious mechanisms the eyes. . . . That deer in
line with the visionnot a zebra? A zebra after all these years? And yet . . . curious, indeed, the eyes! . . . a
zebra. . . . Who ever heard of a deer with stripes? The big hand rose from the eyes and ran through the hair
which he had always worn rather long. It would seem strange to have it cut very short. . . . Did they use
clippers, perhaps? . . .
He started suddenly and realized that his next door neighbor had passed along the sidewalk with head
averted, pretending not to see him. A few weeks ago the man would not have missed the chance of looking in
to bowwith proper deference, too! Did he know? He could not know THIS! It must be the Beaver Beach
scandal. It must be. It could not be THISnot yet! But it MIGHT be. How many knew? Louden, Norbert,
Arielwho else? And again the deer took on the strange zebra look.
The Judge walked slowly down to the gate; spoke to the man he had employed in Sam Warden's place, a
Scotchman who had begun to refresh the lawn with a garden hose; bowed affably in response to the salutation
of the elder Louden, who was passing, bound homeward from the factory, and returned to the house with
thoughtful steps. In the hall he encountered his wife; stopped to speak with her upon various household
matters; then entered the library, which was his workroom. He locked the door; tried it, and shook the handle.
After satisfying himself of its security, he pulled down the windowshades carefully, and, lighting a gas
droplamp upon his desk, began to fumble with various documents, which he took from a small safe near by.
But his hands were not steady; he dropped the papers, scattering them over the floor, and had great difficulty
in picking them up. He perspired heavily: whatever he touched became damp, and he continually mopped his
forehead with his sleeve. After a time he gave up the attempt to sort the packets of papers; sank into a chair
despairingly, leaving most of them in disorder. A light tap sounded on the door.
"Martin, it's suppertime."
With a great effort he made shift to answer: "Yes, I know. You and Mamie go ahead. I'm too busy tonight. I
don't want anything."
A moment before, he had been a pitiful figure, face distraught, hands incoherent, the whole body
incoordinate, but if eyes might have rested upon him as he answered his wife they would have seen a strange
thing; he sat, apparently steady and collected, his expression cool, his body quiet, poised exactly to the
quality of his reply, for the same strange reason that a young girl smiles archly and coquettes to a telephone.
"But, Martin, you oughtn't to work so hard. You'll break down"
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 128
Page No 131
"No fear of that," he replied, cheerfully. "You can leave something on the sideboard for me."
After another fluttering remonstrance, she went away, and the room was silent again. His arms rested upon
the desk, and his head slowly sank between his elbows. When he lifted it again the clock on the mantelpiece
had tinkled once. It was halfpast seven. He took a sheet of note paper from a box before him and began to
write, but when he had finished the words, "My dear wife and Mamie," his fingers shook so violently that he
could go no further. He placed his left hand over the back of his right to steady it, but found the device
unavailing: the pen left mere zigzags on the page, and he dropped it.
He opened a lower drawer of the desk and took out of it a pistol; rose, went to the door, tried it once more,
and again was satisfied of his seclusion. Then he took the weapon in both hands, the handle against his
fingers, one thumb against the trigger, and, shaking with nausea, lifted it to the level of his eyes. His will
betrayed him; he could not contract his thumb upon the trigger, and, with a convulsive shiver, he dropped the
revolver upon the desk.
He locked the door of the room behind him, crept down the stairs and out of the frontdoor. He walked
shamblingly, when he reached the street, keeping close to the fences as he went on, now and then touching
the pickets with his hands like a feeble old man.
He had always been prompt; it was one of the things of which he had been proud: in all his life he had never
failed to keep a business engagement precisely upon the appointed time, and the Court house bell clanged
eight when Sam Warden opened the door for his old employer tonight.
The two young people looked up gravely from the scriptladen table before them as Martin Pike came into
the strong lamplight out of the dimness of the hall, where only a taper burned. He shambled a few limp steps
into the room and came to a halt. Big as he was, his clothes hung upon him loosely, like coverlets upon a
collapsed bed; and he seemed but a distorted image of himself, as if (save for the dull and reddened eyes) he
had been made of yellowish wax and had been left too long in the sun. Abject, hopeless, his attitude a
confession of ruin and shame, he stood before his judges in such wretchedness that, in comparison, the figure
of Happy Fear, facing the courtroom through his darkest hour, was one to be envied.
"Well," he said, brokenly, "what are you going to do?"
Joe Louden looked at him with great intentness for several moments. Then he rose and came forward. "Sit
down, Judge," he said. "It's all right. Don't worry "
XXV. THE JURY COMES IN
Mrs. Flitcroft, at breakfast on the following morning, continued a disquisition which had ceased, the previous
night, only because of a provoking human incapacity to exist without sleep. Her theme was one which had
exclusively occupied her since the passing of Eskew, and, her rheumatism having improved so that she could
leave her chair, she had become a sort of walking serial; Norbert and his grandfather being well assured that,
whenever they left the house, the same story was to be continued upon their reappearance. The Tocsin had
been her great comfort: she was but one helpless woman against two strong men; therefore she sorely needed
assistance in her attack upon them, and the invaluable newspaper gave it in generous measure.
"Yes, young man," she said, as she lifted her first spoonful of oatmeal, "you BETTER read the Tocsin!"
"I AM reading it," responded Norbert, who was almost concealed by the paper.
"And your grandfather better read it!" she continued, severely.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 129
Page No 132
"I already have," said the Colonel, promptly. "Have you?"
"No, but you can be sure I will!" The good lady gave the effect of tossing her head. "And you better take
what it says to heart, you and some others. It's a wonder to me that you and Buckalew and old Peter don't go
and hold that Happy Fear's hand durin' the trial! And as for Joe Louden, his stepmother's own sister, Jane,
says to me only yesterday afternoon, `Why, law! Mrs. Flitcroft,' she says, `it's a wonder to me,' she says, `that
your husband and those two other old fools don't lay down in the gutter and let that Joe Louden walk over
'em.' "
"Did Jane Quimby say `those two other old fools'?" inquired the Colonel, in a manner which indicated that he
might see Mr. Quimby in regard to the slander.
"I can't say as I remember just precisely her exact words," admitted Mrs. Flitcroft, "but that was the sense of
'em! You've made yourselves the laughin'stock of the whole town!"
"Oh, we have?"
"And I'd like to know"her voice became shrill and goading"I'd like to know what Judge Pike thinks of
you and Norbert! I should think you'd be ashamed to have him pass you in the street."
"I've quit speaking to him," said Norbert, coldly, "ever since I heard he owned Beaver Beach."
"That story ain't proved yet!" returned his grandmother, with much irascibility.
"Well, it will be; but that's not all." Norbert wagged his head. "You may be a little surprised within the next
few days."
"I've been surprised for the PAST few!" she replied, with a bitterness which overrode her satisfaction in the
effectiveness of the retort. "Surprised! I'd like to know who wouldn't be surprised when half the town acts
like it's gone crazy. People PRAISIN' that fellow, that nobody in their sober minds and senses never in their
lives had a good word for before! Why, there was more talk yesterday about his doin's at the Courthouse
you'd of thought he was Phil Sheridan! It's `Joe Louden' here and `Joe Louden' there, and `Joe Louden' this
and `Joe Louden' that, till I'm sick of the name!"
"Then why don't you quit saying it?" asked the Colonel, reasonably.
"Because it'd OUGHT to be said!" she exclaimed, with great heat. "Because he'd ought to be held up to the
community to be despised. You let me have that paper a minute," she pursued, vehemently; "you just let me
have the Tocsin and I'll read you out some things about him that 'll show him in his true light!"
"All right," said Norbert, suddenly handing her the paper. "Go ahead."
And after the exchange of a single glance the two gentlemen composed themselves to listen.
"Ha!" exclaimed Mrs. Flitcroft. "Here it is in headlines on the first page. `Defence Scores Again and Again.
Ridiculous Behavior of a WouldBe Mob. Louden's"' She paused, removed her spectacles, examined them
dubiously, restored them to place, and continued: "`Louden's Masterly Conduct and WellDeserved' " she
paused again, incredulous"`WellDeserved Triumph' "
"Go on," said the Colonel, softly.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 130
Page No 133
"Indeed I will!" the old lady replied. "Do you think I don't know sarcasm when I see it? Ha, ha!" She laughed
with great heartiness. "I reckon I WILL go on! You listen and try to LEARN something from it!" She
resumed the reading:
"`It is generally admitted that after yesterday's sitting of the court, the prosecution in the Fear Cory murder
trial has not a leg to stand on. Louden's fight for his client has been, it must be confessed, of a most splendid
and talented order, and the bottom has fallen out of the case for the State, while a verdict of Not Guilty, it is
now conceded, is the general wish of those who have attended and followed the trial. But the most interesting
event of the day took place after the session, when some miscreants undertook to mob the attorney for the
defence in the Courthouse yard. He met the attack with a coolness and nerve which have won him a
popularity that' " Mrs. Flitcroft again faltered.
"Go on," repeated the Colonel. "There's a great deal more."
"Look at the editorials," suggested Norbert. "There's one on the same subject."
Mrs. Flitcroft, her theory of the Tocsin's sarcasm somewhat shaken, turned the page. "We Confess a Mistake"
was the rubric above the leader, and she uttered a cry of triumph, for she thought the mistake was what she
had just been reading, and that the editorial would apologize for the incomprehensible journalistic error upon
the first page. "`The best of us make mistakes, and it is well to have a change of heart sometimes.' " (Thus
Eugene's successor had written, and so Mrs. Flitcroft read.) "`An open confession is good for the soul. The
Tocsin has changed its mind in regard to certain matters, and means to say so freely and frankly. After
yesterday's events in connection with the murder trial before our public, the evidence being now all
presented, for we understand that neither side has more to offer, it is generally conceded that all good citizens
are hopeful of a verdict of acquittal; and the Tocsin is a good citizen. No good citizen would willingly see an
innocent man punished, and that our city is not to be disgraced by such a miscarriage of justice is due to the
efforts of the attorney for the defendant, who has gained credit not only by his masterly management of this
case, but by his splendid conduct in the face of danger yesterday afternoon. He has distinguished himself so
greatly that we frankly assert that our citizens may point with pride to' " Mrs. Flitcroft's voice, at the
beginning pitched to a high exultation, had gradually lowered in key and dropped down the scale till it
disappeared altogether.
"It's a wonder to me," the Colonel began, "that the Tocsin doesn't go and hold Joe Louden's hand."
"I'll read the rest of it for you," said Norbert, his heavy face lighting up with cruelty. "Let's seewhere were
you? Oh yes`point with pride'? `Our citizens may point with pride to . . .' "
Let us not linger to observe the unmanly behavior of an aged man and his grandson left alone at the
breakfasttable by a defenceless woman.
The Tocsin's rightaboutface undermined others besides Mrs. Flitcroft that morning, and rejoiced greater
(though not better) men than the Colonel. Mr. Farbach and his lieutenants smiled, yet stared, amazed,
wondering what had happened. That was a thing which only three people even certainly knew; yet it was very
simple.
The Tocsin was part of the Judge's restitution.
"The controlling interest in the paper, together with the other property I have listed," Joe had said, studying
his memoranda under the lamp in Roger's old studio, while Martin Pike listened with his head in his hands,
"make up what Miss Tabor is willing to accept. As I estimate it, their total value is between a third and a half
of that of the stock which belonged to her."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 131
Page No 134
"But this boythis Flitcroft," said Pike, feebly; "he might"
"He will do nothing," interrupted Joe. "The case is `settled out of court,' and even if he were disposed to
harass you, he could hardly hope to succeed, since Miss Tabor declines either to sue or to prosecute."
The Judge winced at the last word. "Yesyes, I know; but he mighthe mighttell."
"I think Miss Tabor's influence will prevent. If it should notwell, you're not in a desperate case by any
means; you're involved, but far from stripped; in time you may be as sound as ever. And if Norbert tells,
there's nothing for you to do but to live it down." A faint smile played upon Joe's lips as he lifted his head and
looked at the other. "It can be done, I think."
It was then that Ariel, complaining of the warmth of the evening, thought it possible that Joe might find her
fan upon the porch, and as he departed, whispered hurriedly: "Judge Pike, I'm not technically in control of the
Tocsin, but haven't I the right to control its policy?"
"I understand," he muttered. "You mean about Loudenabout this trial"
"That is why I have taken the paper."
"You want all that changed, you mean?"
She nodded decisively. "From this instant. Before morning."
"Oh, well, I'll go down there and give the word." He rubbed his eyes wearily with big thumbs. "I'm through
fighting. I'm done. Besides, what's the use? There's nothing more to fight."
"Now, Judge," Joe said, as he came in briskly, "we'll go over the list of that unencumbered property, if you
will."
This unencumbered property consisted of Beaver Beach and those other belongings of the Judge which he
had not dared to mortgage. Joe had somehow explained their nature to Ariel, and these with the Tocsin she
had elected to accept in restitution.
"You told me once that I ought to look after my own property, and now I will. Don't you see?" she cried to
Joe, eagerly. "It's my work!" She resolutely set aside every other proposition; and this was the quality of
mercy which Martin Pike found that night.
There was a great crowd to hear Joe's summing up at the trial, and those who succeeded in getting into the
courtroom declared that it was worth the struggle. He did not orate, he did not "thunder at the jury," nor did
he slyly flatter them; he did not overdo the confidential, nor seem so secure of understanding beforehand
what their verdict would be that they felt an instinctive desire to fool him. He talked colloquially but clearly,
without appeal to the pathetic and without garnitures, not mentioning sunsets, birds, oceans, homes, the
glorious old State, or the happiness of liberty; but he made everybody in the room quite sure that Happy Fear
had fired the shot which killed Cory to save his own life. And that, as Mr. Bradbury remarked to the Colonel,
was "what Joe was THERE for!"
Ariel's escort was increased to four that day: Mr. Ladew sat beside her, and there were times when Joe kept
his mind entirely to the work in hand only by an effort, but he always succeeded. The sight of the pale and
worshipping face of Happy Fear from the corner of his eye was enough to insure that. And people who could
not get near the doors, asking those who could, "What's he doin' now?" were answered by variations of the
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 132
Page No 135
one formula, "Oh, jest walkin' away with it!"
Once the courtroom was disturbed and set in an uproar which even the Judge's customary threat failed to
subdue. Joe had been talking very rapidly, and having turned the point he was making with perfect dexterity,
the jury listening eagerly, stopped for a moment to take a swallow of water. A voice rose over the low hum of
the crowd in a delirious chuckle: "Why don't somebody `HEAD HIM OFF!' " The room instantly rocked with
laughter, under cover of which the identity of the sacrilegious chuckler was not discovered, but the voice was
the voice of Buckalew, who was incredibly surprised to find that he had spoken aloud.
The jury were "out," after the case had been given to them, seventeen minutes and thirty seconds by the
watch Claudine held in her hand. The little man, whose fate was now on the knees of the gods, looked
pathetically at the foreman and then at the face of his lawyer and began to shake violently, but not with fright.
He had gone to the jail on Joe's word, as a good dog goes where his master bids, trustfully; and yet Happy
had not been able to keep his mind from considering the horrible chances. "Don't worry," Joe had said. "It's
all right. I'll see you through." And he had kept his word.
The little man was cleared.
It took Happy a long time to get through what he had to say to his attorney in the anteroom, and even then, of
course, he did not manage to put it in words, for he had "broken down" with sheer gratitude. "Why, damn
ME, Joe," he sobbed, "if ever Iif ever youwell, by God! if you ever" This was the substance of his
lingual accomplishment under the circumstances. But Claudine threw her arms around poor Joe's neck and
kissed him.
Many people were waiting to shake hands with Joe and congratulate him. The trio, taking advantage of seats
near the rail, had already done that (somewhat uproariously) before he had followed Happy, and so had Ariel
and Ladew, both, necessarily, rather hurriedly. But in the corridors he found, when he came out of the
anteroom, clients, acquaintances, friends: old friends, new friends, and friends he had never seen before
everybody beaming upon him and wringing his hand, as if they had been sure of it all from the start.
"KNOW him?" said one to another. "Why, I've knowed him sence he was that high! SMART little feller he
was, too!" This was a total stranger.
"I said, years ago"thus Mr. Brown, the "National House" clerk, proving his prophetic vision "that he'd
turn out to be a big man some day."
They gathered round him if he stopped for an instant, and crowded after him admiringly when he went on
again, making his progress slow. When he finally came out of the big doors into the sunshine, there were as
many people in the yard as there had been when he stood in the same place and watched the mob rushing his
client's guards. But today their temper was different, and as he paused a moment, looking down on the
upturned, laughing faces, with a hundred jocular and congratulatory salutations shouted up at him, somebody
started a cheer, and it was taken up with thunderous goodwill.
There followed the interrogation customary in such emergencies, and the anxious inquirer was informed by
four or five hundred people simultaneously that Joe Louden was all right.
"HEAD HIM OFF!" bellowed Mike Sheehan, suddenly darting up the steps. The shout increased, and with
good reason, for he stepped quickly back within the doors; and, retreating through the building, made good
his escape by a basement door.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 133
Page No 136
He struck off into a long detour, but though he managed to evade the crowd, he had to stop and shake hands
with every third person he met. As he came out upon Main Street again, he encountered his father.
"Howdy do, Joe?" said this laconic person, and offered his hand. They shook, briefly. "Well," he continued,
rubbing his beard, "how are ye?"
"All right, father, I think."
"Satisfied with the verdict?"
"I'd be pretty hard to please if I weren't," Joe laughed.
Mr. Louden rubbed his beard again. "I was there," he said, without emotion.
"At the trial, you mean?"
"Yes." He offered his hand once more, and again they shook. "Well, come around and see us," he said.
"Thank you. I will."
"Well," said Mr. Louden, "goodday, Joe."
"Goodday, father."
The young man stood looking after him with a curious smile. Then he gave a slight start. Far up the street he
saw two figures, one a lady's, in white, with a wide white hat; the other a man's, wearing recognizably clerical
black. They seemed to be walking very slowly.
It had been a day of triumph for Joe; but in all his life he never slept worse than he did that night.
XXVI. ANCIENT OF DAYS
He woke to the chiming of bells, and, as his eyes slowly opened, the sorrowful people of a dream, who
seemed to be bending over him, weeping, swam back into the darkness of the night whence they had come,
and returned to the imperceptible, leaving their shadows in his heart. Slowly he rose, stumbled into the outer
room, and released the fluttering shade; but the sunshine, springing like a golden lover through the open
window, only dazzled him, and found no answering gladness to greet it, nor joy in the royal day it heralded.
And yet, to the newly cleaned boys on their way to midsummer morning Sundayschool, the breath of that
cool August day was as sweet as stolen apples. No doubt the stir of far, green thickets and the twinkle of
silverslippered creeks shimmered in the longing vision of their minds' eyes; even so, they were merry. But
Joseph Louden, sighing as he descended his narrow stairs, with the bitterness still upon his lips of the
frightful coffee he had made, heard the echo of their laughter with wonder.
It would be an hour at least before time to start to church, when Ariel expected him; he stared absently up the
street, then down, and, after that, began slowly to walk in the latter direction, with no very active
consciousness, or care, of where he went. He had fallen into a profound reverie, so deep that when he had
crossed the bridge and turned into a dusty road which ran along the riverbank, he stopped mechanically
beside the trunk of a fallen sycamore, and, lifting his head, for the first time since he had set out, looked about
him with a melancholy perplexity, a little surprised to find himself there.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 134
Page No 137
For this was the spot where he had first seen the new Ariel, and on that fallen sycamore they had sat together.
"REMEMBER, ACROSS MAIN STREET BRIDGE AT NOON!" And Joe's cheeks burned, as he recalled
why he had not understood the clear voice that had haunted him. But that shame had fallen from him; she had
changed all that, as she had changed so many things. He sank down in the long grass, with his back against
the log, and stared out over the fields of tall corn, shaking in a steady wind all the way to the horizon.
"Changed so many things?" he said, half aloud. "Everything!" Ah, yes, she had changed the whole world for
Joseph Loudenat his first sight of her! And now it seemed to him that he was to lose her, but not in the way
he had thought.
Almost from the very first, he had the feeling that nothing so beautiful as that she should stay in Canaan
could happen to him. He was sure that she was but for the little while, that her coming was like the flying
petals of which he had told her.
He had lain upon the earth; and she had lifted him up. For a moment he had felt the beatific wings enfolding
him with gentle protection, and then saw them lifted to bear the angel beyond his sight. For it was incredible
that the gods so loved Joe Louden that they would make greater gifts to him than this little time with her
which they had granted him.
"Changed so many things?"
The bars that had been between him and half of his world were down, shattered, never more to be replaced;
and the ban of Canaan was lifted. Could this have been, save for her? And upon that thought he got to his
feet, uttering an exclamation of bitter selfreproach, asking himself angrily what he was doing. He knew how
much she gave him, what full measure of her affection! Was not that enough?Out upon you, Louden! Are
you to sulk in your tent, dour in the gloom, or to play a man's part, and if she be happy, turn a cheery face
upon her joy?
And thus this pilgrim recrossed the bridge, emerging to the street with his head up, smiling, and his shoulders
thrown back so that none might see the burden he carried.
Ariel was waiting on the porch for him. She wore the same dress she had worn that Sunday of their tryst; that
exquisite dress, with the faint lavender overtint, like the tender colors of the beautiful day he made his own.
She had not worn it since, and he was far distant when he caught the first flickering glimpse of her through
the lower branches of the maples, but he remembered. . . . And again, as on that day, he heard a faraway,
ineffable music, the Elfland horns, sounding the mysterious reveille which had wakened his soul to her
coming.
She came to the gate to meet him, and gave him her hand in greeting, without a wordor the need of
onefrom either. Then together they set forth over the sunflecked pavement, the maples swishing above
them, heavier branches crooning in the strong breeze, under a sky like a Della Robbia background. And up
against the glorious blue of it, some laughing, invisible god was blowing small, rounded clouds of pure
cotton, as children blow thistledown.
When he opened her parasol, as they came out into the broad sunshine beyond Upper Main Street, there was
the faintest mingling of wild roses and cinnamon loosed on the air.
"Joe," she said, "I'm very happy!"
"That's right," he returned, heartily. "I think you always will be."
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 135
Page No 138
"But, oh! I wish," she went on, "that Mr. Arp could have lived to see you come down the Court house
steps."
"God bless him!" said Joe. "I can hear the `argument'!"
"Those dear old men have been so loyal to you, Joe."
"No," he returned; "loyal to Eskew."
"To you both," she said. "I'm afraid the old circle is broken up; they haven't met on the National House corner
since he died. The Colonel told me he couldn't bear to go there again."
"I don't believe any of them ever will," he returned. "And yet I never pass the place that I don't see Eskew in
his old chair. I went there last night to commune with him. I couldn't sleep, and I got up, and went over there;
they'd left the chairs out; the town was asleep, and it was beautiful moonlight"
"To commune with him? What about?"
"You."
"Why?" she asked, plainly mystified.
"I stood in need of good counsel," he answered, cheerfully, "or a friendly word, perhaps, andas I sat
thereafter a while it came."
"What was it?"
"To forget that I was sodden with selfishness; to pretend not to be as full of meanness as I really was! Doesn't
that seem to be Eskew's own voice?"
"Weren't you happy last night, Joe?"
"Oh, it was all right," he said, quickly. "Don't you worry."
And at this old speech of his she broke into a little laugh of which he had no comprehension.
"Mamie came to see me early this morning," she said, after they had walked on in silence for a time.
"Everything is all right with her again; that is, I think it will be. Eugene is coming home. And," she added,
thoughtfully, "it will be best for him to have his old place on the Tocsin again. She showed me his letter, and
I liked it. I think he's been through the fire"
Joe's distorted smile appeared. "And has come out gold?" he asked.
"No," she laughed; "but nearer it! And I think he'll try to be more worth her caring for. She has always
thought that his leaving the Tocsin in the way he did was heroic. That was her word for it. And it WAS the
finest thing he ever did."
"I can't figure Eugene out." Joe shook his head. "There's something behind his going away that I don't
understand." This was altogether the truth; nor was there ever to come a time when either he or Mamie would
understand what things had determined the departure of Eugene Bantry; though Mamie never questioned, as
Joe did, the reasons for it, or doubted those Eugene had given her, which were the same he had given her
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 136
Page No 139
father. For she was content with his return.
Again the bells across the Square rang out their chime. The paths were decorously enlivened with family and
neighborhood groups, bound churchward; and the rumble of the organ, playing the people into their pews,
shook on the air. And Joe knew that he must speak quickly, if he was to say what he had planned to say,
before he and Ariel went into the church.
"Ariel?" He tried to compel his voice to a casual cheerfulness, but it would do nothing for him, except betray
a desperate embarrassment.
She looked at him quickly, and as quickly away.
"Yes?"
"I wanted to say something to you, and I'd better do it now, I thinkbefore I go to church for the first time in
two years!" He managed to laugh, though with some ruefulness, and continued stammeringly: "I want to tell
you how much I like himhow much I admire him"
"Admire whom?" she asked, a little coldly, for she knew.
"Mr. Ladew."
"So do I," she answered, looking straight ahead. "That is one reason why I wanted you to come with me
today."
"It isn't only that. I want to tell youto tell you" He broke off for a second. "You remember that night in
my office before Fear came in?"
"Yes; I remember."
"And that Ithat something I said troubled you because itit sounded as if I cared too much for you"
"No; not too much." She still looked straight ahead. They were walking very slowly. "You didn't understand.
You'd been in my mind, you see, all those years, so much more than I in yours. I hadn't forgotten YOU. But
to you I was really a stranger"
"No, no!" he cried.
"Yes, I was," she said, gently but very quickly. "And II didn't want you to fall in love with me at first sight.
And yetperhaps I did! But I hadn't thought of things in that way. I had just the same feeling for you that I
always had always! I had never cared so much for any one else, and it seemed to me the most necessary
thing in my life to come back to that old companionship Don't you rememberit used to trouble you so
when I would take your hand? I think I loved your being a little rough with me. And once, when I saw how
you had been hurt, that day you ran away"
"Ariel!" he gasped, helplessly.
"Have you forgotten?"
He gathered himself together with all his will. "I want to prove to you," he said, resolutely, "that the dear
kindness of you isn't thrown away on me; I want you to know what I began to say: that it's all right with me;
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 137
Page No 140
and I think Ladew" He stopped again. "Ah! I've seen how much he cares for you"
"Have you?"
"Ariel," he said, "that isn't fair to me, if you trust me. You could not have helped seeing"
"But I have not seen it," she interrupted, with great calmness. After having said this, she finished truthfully:
"If he did, I would never let him tell me. I like him too much."
"You mean you're not going to"
Suddenly she turned to him. "NO!" she said, with a depth of anger he had not heard in her voice since that
longago winter day when she struck Eugene Bantry with her clenched fist. She swept over him a blinding
look of reproach. "How could I?"
And there, upon the steps of the church, in the sudden, dazzling vision of her love, fell the burden of him who
had made his sorrowful pilgrimage across Main Street bridge that morning.
A manifold rustling followed them as they went down the aisle, and the sibilance of many whisperings; but
Joe was not conscious of that, as he took his place in Ariel's pew beside her. For him there was only the
presence of divinity; the church was filled with it.
They rose to sing:
"Ancient of days, Who sittest, throned in glory, To Thee all knees are bent, all voices pray; Thy love has blest
the wide world's wondrous story With light and life since Eden's dawning day."
And then, as they knelt to pray, there were the white heads of the three old friends of Eskew Arp; and beyond
was the silver hair of Martin Pike, who knelt beside his daughter. Joe felt that people should be very kind to
the Judge.
The sun, so eager without, came temperately through the windows, where stood angels and saints in gentle
colors, and the face of the young minister in this quiet light was like the faces in the windows. . . .
"Not only to confront your enemies," he said; "that is not enough; nor is it that I would have you bluster at
them, nor take arms against them; you will not have to do that if, when they come at you, you do not turn one
inch aside, but with an assured heart, with good nature, not noisily, and with steadfastness, you keep on your
way. If you can do that, I say that they will turn aside for you, and you shall walk straight through them, and
only laughter be left of their anger!"
There was a stir among the people, and many faces turned toward Joe. Two years ago he had sat in the same
church, when his character and actions had furnished the underlying theme of a sermon, and he had
recognized himself without difficulty: today he had not the shadow of a dream that the same thing was
happening. He thought the people were turning to look at Ariel, and he was very far from wondering at that.
She saw that he did not understand; she was glad to have it so. She had taken off her gloves, and he was
holding them lightly and reverently in his hands, looking down upon them, his thin cheeks a little flushed.
And at that, and not knowing the glory that was in his soul, something forlorn in his careful tenderness
toward her gloves so touched her that she felt the tears coming to her eyes with a sudden rush. And to prevent
them.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 138
Page No 141
"Not the empty gloves, Joe," she whispered.
The Conquest of Canaan
The Conquest of Canaan 139
Bookmarks
1. Table of Contents, page = 3
2. The Conquest of Canaan, page = 4
3. Booth Tarkington, page = 4